


Lesbian Soccer Moms

by walterio



Category: Lesbian Sex
Published: 2006-07-19
Updated: 2009-01-24
Packaged: 2017-04-21 19:39:04
Chapters: 7
Publisher: literotica.com
Story URL: https://www.literotica.com/s/lesbian-soccer-moms
Author URL:
https://www.literotica.com/stories/memberpage.php?uid=429765&page=submissions
Summary: <p>1. Soccer coaches, mothers, & daughters get together.</p>
<p>2. Coaches, Moms and Daughters in the Pre-Season.</p>
<p>3. Practice and Preparation.</p>
<p>4. Mothers and coaches have season kick off meeting.</p>
<p>5. The season is half over but with new surprises.</p>
<p>6. The team and the mothers wrap up a successful season.</p>
<p>7. Maria and Janet make career decisions.</p>
Erotica Tags: Foursomes, Incest, Lesbian Anal Sex, Lesbian Coed, Lesbian Milf,
Lesbian Oral Sex, Lesbian Orgy, Lesbian Rimming, Lesbian Seduction, Lesbian
Sex, Strap-Ons
Average Rating: 4.42





TABLE OF CONTENTS


Lesbian Soccer Moms

Lesbian Soccer Moms Ch. 02

Lesbian Soccer Moms Ch. 03

Lesbian Soccer Moms Ch. 04

Lesbian Soccer Moms Ch. 05

Lesbian Soccer Moms Ch. 06

Lesbian Soccer Moms 02 Ch. 01




        Lesbian Soccer Moms


_INTRODUCTION  
  
By request I have been asked by readers of my stories to write a story about
lesbian incest. The theme requested is about a girl’s soccer team and their
mothers. The story is fiction and all the characters are fictitious. I hope
you enjoy the story._  
  
THE RIDGEWAY HIGH SCHOOL COUGARS  
  
The Ridgeway High School girl’s soccer team in years past had been mediocre at
best. The school had hired appointed a new coach who had played soccer in
Spain and she had been recently hired as the school’s new Spanish teacher.
Maria Espinoza was a 28 year old Spanish beauty with long black hair and dark
eyes. She truly possessed the Mediterranean mystique and she was a head turner
with her shapely figure. Maria stood at 5’6” and weighed about 115 pounds. She
had small firm breasts, a narrow waist, shapely legs and a killer ass. She was
in terrific shape and she had continued to play soccer in an adult league
before she got coaching position at Ridgeway. As she walked the halls of the
high school Maria got many a look from male teachers and students alike but
none of them got her attention. Maria was a confirmed lesbian. She was gay and
she had always enjoyed being gay. When Maria played soccer in Europe she had
met other gay players and she had had her share of encounters with other
women.  
  
Maria was determined to turn Ridgeway’s Lady Cougars into a winning program.
She was fortunate to have two new senior girls transfer to the school this
year. The girls were twins born in Germany. They spent most of their school
years in Germany and learned to play soccer there. They were far superior to
any of the other players but Maria hoped that their experience would rub off
on the other girls. Erica and Gretchen were identical twin blonde sisters.
They were very pretty even given their athleticism and they were very
aggressive on and off the playing field. Their mother Stephanie was a striking
woman with a very regal appearance. Stephanie was a single parent divorced for
almost eight years now. She did not date and she did have any interest in re-
marrying. She had long ago given up on men. Stephanie had been concerned that
her girls would be playing for a losing team until she had heard that Maria
had been appointed the new coach. She had contacted Maria and offered her
assistance in anyway possible Maria. Maria was grateful for the offer.  
  
Next Monday would be the first day of practice and Maria would find out then
what kind of a team she could put together. She knew the twins would be
exceptional but she had no idea what other potential she had. She would find
out soon.  
  
AN EVENING AT THE KESLER’S  
  
Stephanie and her two twin daughters had just finished dinner and they were
relaxing in the family room. They talked about soccer and the upcoming season.
The twins hoped that there would be some talent on the team besides them. They
were excited by Maria’s appointment as they knew that she was experienced in
the European style of play.  
  
“Maria is beautiful. Do you think she is gay?” Erica blurted out.  
  
“I don’t know but I’m sure we will find out before the season is over. I would
sure like to see her pussy and taste it. She is really hot,” added Gretchen.  
  
“I would go easy with her girls. She is going to have her hands full trying to
put this team together and she won’t need any distractions,” their mother
cautioned.  
  
“You’re right mother but if there is a chance I will be all over it,” giggled
Erica.  
  
“So will I. What movie did you get for tonight mother?” Gretchen said.  
  
“It is titled Toys for Tails,” Stephanie told them.  
  
“My that sounds like fun. Are we ready to watch it?” Gretchen asked.  
  
“Yes I am quite ready,” her mother replied.  
  
Stephanie popped the movie in the DVD player and the three of them sat
together on the sofa with Stephanie between her two daughters. The movie
started with two pretty blondes and cute brunette sitting at home when a
package arrived. They quickly opened the package and they started taking sex
toys out of the box. There were strap-on dildos, butt plugs, anal beads and
double headed dildos. It didn’t take long for the blondes to begin working
over the brunette and they were soon fucking her in her pussy and her ass with
strap-on dildos. Stephanie and her two daughters were immediately turned on by
the scene in the movie and they started to feel each other up as they watched
the screen.  
  
They were all wearing tee shirts and shorts with no bras or panties so in a
matter of seconds the three women were naked. Erica and Gretchen were sucking
on their mother’s tits as Stephanie fingered her daughter’s pussies. They had
worked themselves into quite a state and they quickly moved to the floor and
arranged themselves so that they could eat each other’s pussy. Erica was
eating her mother’s pussy as Stephanie ate her daughter Gretchen who in turn
ate her sister Erica. The three of them had done this many times before and it
was their favorite way to warm up for the evening. Within minutes they were
all cumming and sprayed each other’s faces with their female love juice. After
they licked each other clean they sat back up on the sofa and picked up on the
movie.  
  
On the screen the girls were preparing to deflower one of the blondes who
pretended to be an anal virgin. The brunette was pushing anal beads into her
ass after having lubed it with her fingers. The blonde was on all fours with
the other blonde underneath her eating her pussy. The brunette slowly pushed
six beads into the blonde’s ass while her pussy was being eaten by the other
blonde. As the blonde began to orgasm into the other girl’s mouth the brunette
slowly popped one bead at a time out of the girl’s ass. The girl orgasmed and
screamed each time a bead cleared her anus. When all the beads were out the
brunette put her face into the blonde’s ass and tongued her asshole. The
blonde screamed with delight and her body shook as the other girl’s cried out
telling her to cum for them. Then the three collapsed on the screen.  
  
Stephanie and her daughters were worked up again and Erica got up and left the
room. She returned shortly with a box of toys and smiled at her mother.
Stephanie took out two strap-on dildos and a tube of lubricant.  
  
“Let’s give Gretchen what she has been waiting for,” Stephanie said and handed
one of the strap-on dildos to Erica.  
  
Both Erica and her mother put on the harnesses and snapped in the fake cocks.
Erica lay on her back and her sister straddled her lowering her trimmed pussy
onto the fake cock. Stephanie moved in behind her daughter and squirted an
ample amount of lube directly into Gretchen’s asshole. Then Stephanie pushed
it in deeper with her finger and massaged her daughter’s asshole with her
finger. Gretchen crooned as the lube entered her rectum and she felt her
mother’s welcome finger in her ass. Stephanie then put and ample amount of
lube on the fake cock and eased it into her daughter’s ass. Gretchen loved to
be double penetrated more than anything and she still remembered the day that
her mother had taken both her anal and vaginal virginity. Erica lost hers as
well that day and ever since the girls loved to have their holes plugged with
fake cocks.  
  
Stephanie fucked her daughter’s ass as Gretchen rode the fake cock in her
pussy. Gretchen was out of control and she was bucking frantically with the
intensity of her orgasm. Erica reached up and pinched her sister’s firm tits
and hard nipples as Gretchen cried out in climax.  
  
“That’s it my dear cum for us, cum for us,” Stephanie urged as her daughter
surged out of control and collapsed on her sister.  
  
Erica cradled her trembling sister in her arms as her mother eased the rubber
cock out of Gretchen’s asshole. Gretchen felt the cool air tickle her dilated
anus as the cock was removed from her butt. Gretchen rolled off of Erica and
lay next to her on the floor. She was only allowed to rest for a few minutes
and then she put on the strap-on that Erica had used on her pussy. Erica was
next and she straddled Gretchen and lowered her pussy onto the fake cock. Then
her mother lubed her asshole and filled it with the other fake cock just as
she had done to Gretchen. Erica soon felt the surge run through her body and
she drenched the rubber cock in her pussy. Erica was a squirter and she gushed
in orgasm as the two fake cocks worked her holes.  
  
Finally it was Stephanie’s turn to be double fucked. She liked to lie on her
side with her daughters fucking her. Erica pressed into her mother and their
tits rubbed together and the sensitive nipples hardened immediately. Gretchen
pushed the other dildo into her mother’s ass and then she established a rhythm
with her sister as they fucked their mother. Stephanie loved to be fucked by
her two daughters and she was so glad that she had introduced them into the
world of lesbianism. They fucked their mother with a passion and when
Stephanie pleaded with them to stop they ignored her and continued fucking
her. The girls knew that their mother had at least one more orgasm in her and
they were determined to bring her to another climax. The final orgasm hit
Stephanie hard and her entire body shook and trembled as she screamed in
passion. She felt as if she was close to passing out her orgasm was that
intense.  
  
“Oh this is a big one, oh my God, oh my God, I’m cummmming!” Stephanie cried
out.  
  
“That’s it mother cum for us just as we came for you,” the girls urged her.  
  
“Oh please stop now, I can’t take anymore. You must stop, please,” Stephanie
begged her daughters.  
  
The two twins stopped their movements but left the fake cocks in their
mother’s holes and the three of them remained motionless for several minutes.
Gretchen moved first and slid the rubber dick out of her mother’s ass. Then
Erica pulled out of her mother’s pussy and Stephanie rolled over on her back.
Erica and Gretchen took off the strap-on dildos and removed the cocks from the
harnesses. Then Erica took the cocks and put them in the sink to be cleaned.
Erica and Gretchen then went back to the sofa and watched some more of the
movie while their mother recovered on the floor. Stephanie was too exhausted
to even more off the floor. Erica and Gretchen took turns eating each other’s
pussy as they watched the movie. Gretchen loved to eat Erica and have her
sister squirt in her mouth. Gretchen wished that she was a squirter like her
sister. The three of them then went to bed leaving the toys in the family room
and dildos soaking in soapy water. Tomorrow would be another day and it was
Saturday so they would have the morning to pick up where they left off.  
  
FRIDAY EVENING AT ANOTHER HOME  
  
Janet Jones had just arrived at her home with a surprise guest for the
evening. Janet had run into Mrs. Carol Graham at of all places a lesbian
lounge. Janet had decided to go out this Friday night and see what was going
on down at Slippers the popular lesbian hangout. The last person she expected
to see was the mother of one of her students.  
  
Janet taught physical education at Ridgeway High School. Janet was gay and
although she had been bi-sexual for awhile she preferred the lesbian life.
Janet was a cute pixie looking young woman who was almost flat chested. She
was about 5’4”, 110 pounds with short brown hair. Her figure was athletic but
cute as she had shapely legs and a nice pert round bottom. Janet had Marcia
Graham as one of her phys ed students and she had secretly lusted after the
high school beauty. Marcia was pretty and stacked and she new it. Marcia was
kind of a snob and she was always drawing attention to herself. She had many
of the boys walking around school with erections in their pants.  
  
Marcia Graham stood at 5’7”, weighed about 120 pounds, and was a very well put
together girl. Her breasts were probably a 36 B; she had shapely legs and a
marvelous ass. Marcia always wore clothes that showed off her fantastic shape.
Marcia was a cheerleader and the captain of the squad more because of her
popularity then her athletic ability. Janet had often fantasized about
seducing the haughty teenager.  
  
But now Janet was with Marcia’s mother who was every bit as beautiful and
shapely as her daughter. Carol had kept her self in marvelous shape. She was
an avid tennis player who played 3-4 times a week. Carol was married to Bob
Graham who was a successful business man who was gone more than he was home.
Carol and Bob and grown further and further apart recently and sex was no
longer in their lives. Carol still had needs and decided to seek out female
companionship rather than cheat on Bob with another man. Carol had had one
lesbian experience in her life with another tennis player. She had enjoyed the
experience but she did not pursue it any further.  
  
Carol had heard about Slippers and that it was an upscale lesbian cocktail
lounge. She decided to give it a try and see what happened. Carol did not
think about meeting someone that she knew so she was quite surprised when she
ran into Janet. Janet was easy to talk to and before long they were dancing
together. Janet took her time and didn’t press Carol as she was afraid of
chasing her away. Marcia was staying with one of her friends overnight so when
Janet invited Carol to come home with her it was easy for Carol to accept.  
  
As they entered Janet’s home Janet pushed Carol back against the door and
pressed her knee into the woman as she pinned her against the door. Janet’s
hands were all over Carol as she started kissing her passionately on the lips.
Janet’s kisses were so wonderful and eager as her hands cupped Carol’s face,
Janet kissed her over and over. Carol reveled in the thrill of all the
emotions and adrenalin coursing through her body. Janet nibbled on Carol’s
lower lip gently and Carol gushed with exhilaration as their tongues
intertwined. Janet shoved her tongue deep into Carol’s mouth causing her knees
to almost buckle under her with the excitement of the moment. As Janet’s wet
hot tongue explored Carol’s mouth her hands roamed all over her body. Janet
explored inside Carol’s shirt, up her skirt and stroked the exposed skin of
her thighs above her nylons. Carol murmured into Janet’s mouth as the
teacher’s caresses sent shivers through her body as Janet seductively stroked
her breasts and thighs. Carol’s desire intensified as Janet stroked her pussy
through her damp panties.  
  
Janet dropped to her knees and raised Carol’s skirt pushing it up to her
waist. Then she hooked her fingers into Carol’s thong panty and slowly peeled
it down her thighs and off her legs. Janet then held the panty to her nose and
inhaled the sweet smell of Carol’s sex. Next Janet steered Carol back against
foyer table and helped raise her up until she was sitting on the table. Janet
smiled wickedly at Carol as she pushed up her skirt and then dropped slowly in
front of her. As Janet spread her legs Carol couldn't conceal a moan and she
had to stifle her gasps with the back of her hand. Carol could feel Janet’s
hot breath on her sopping wet pussy. Carol then started to place delicate
kisses upon Carol’s naked thighs and the sensation of her wet lips on Carol’s
skin sent waves of excitement through her. Janet ran a fingertip down Carol’s
slit causing her to groan with pleasure as Janet’s fingers honed in on Carol’s
engorged clit.  
  
As Janet inhaled the sweet odor of Carol’s pussy her tongue darted out for an
exploratory lick and then she lapped excitedly at Carol’s quim. Janet began to
lick her from her little dark puckered asshole to her clit. Janet then pulled
Carol’s pussy lips open and exposed her pink pussy as her tongue darted in and
out of Carol’s now dripping cunt. Carol felt as if she were being fucked with
a little cock as Janet stiffened her tongue. Using her thumb Janet rubbed
Carol’s clit and she also dipped her fingers into Carol soaking wet pussy.
Janet then took one very wet finger and slid it into Carol’s tight asshole. Oh
how good it felt to Carol to have something in her ass again it had been so
long. Janet sucked Carol’s clit into her hot mouth and slid her fingers into
her pussy and one into her ass. Carol groaned with the pleasure of the raw sex
and her love of anal sex betrayed her. Soon the intensity in Carol’s ass,
pussy and clit built up to the boiling point and she came noisily with her
juices spilling from her and into Janet’s waiting mouth.  
  
Janet hurriedly took Carol by the hand and led her to the bedroom. Once in the
room they frantically removed the rest of their clothes. Carol knew it was her
turn to pleasure Janet but it had been so long she hoped that she could
satisfy her. Janet stood by the bed as Carol moved behind her and placed
gentle kisses all over her body. She started at Janet’s shoulders and worked
her way slowly down to her buttocks. Carol was enthralled with Janet’s body
with her firmness and smooth skin. Carol began to lick and kiss Janet’s hips
planting kisses all over her sensitive body. Carol couldn’t resist sinking her
teeth into Janet’s firm ass cheeks causing the teacher to shiver and gasp in
surprise. Carol turned Janet toward her and then kissed the inside of her
thighs and worked her way steadily toward her pussy. Carol kissed the area
around Janet’s pussy and inhaled the sweet aroma produced by the aroused gym
teacher.  
  
Carol loved the smell of Janet’s pussy and she was desperate to taste her.
Carol flicked out her tongue and for the second time in many years tasted
another woman’s pussy. Carol was pleased to find that Janet tasted as sweet as
she smelled. Carol began by probing Janet’s pussy gently with her tongue and
then found herself diving into the luscious pussy. Janet fell back onto her
bed and Carol moved to a sitting position between her legs. Carol then began
to lick her clit and loved the way it swelled under her tender touch.
Remembering her only lesbian experience Carol enveloped Janet’s clit with her
mouth and swirled her tongue around it emitting squeals of delight from Janet
letting Carol know that she was driving her crazy. Carol was gaining
confidence with her tactics as she started to lick Janet’s pussy again tasting
her sweetness. She ate her, licked her and probed Janet’s sweet hole with her
tongue and then slipped a finger into Janet’s dripping pussy and finger fucked
her while she sucked and nibbled her swollen clit.  
  
Carol felt Janet’s clit swell and stiffen a little more as she continued to
hold the hard pearl in her mouth. Carol lavished delicate kisses all over
Janet’s pussy and then returned to lustily licking her clit again. Carol’s
tongue danced all over Janet’s clit before probing her quim this time her
tongue delved into every fold of Janet’s now soaking pussy. Janet reached down
and took hold of Carol’s hair and pulled her face tighter to her snatch
forcing Carol’s tongue deeper inside her pussy and she ground her clit against
Carol’s mouth. Carol could feel Janet’s body quake as her orgasm rose within
her and Janet continued to push back against Carol’s face. Janet ground
herself against Carol as her breathing quickened and she moaned aloud and
became uncontrollable. Carol felt Janet’s body stiffen and then she was
cumming all over her face and Carol’s tongue hungrily searched out every drop
of Janet’s sweet nectar.  
  
Janet collapses across the bed on her back as Carol licked her pussy clean of
all female juices. Carol then moves to the bed and lies next to Janet. They
kiss and then Carol tells Janet that this is only her second time with a woman
but that she hopes it won’t be her last. Janet smiles and tells Carol that
this is only the beginning and that they will make love many times and many
ways.  
  
“You know when I ate you before I noticed that you enjoyed having my finger in
your ass. Do you like anal?” Janet observed and asked Carol.  
  
Carol blushed at the question but replied, “Yes I do. I love anal but it has
been awhile since I have anything in my ass. Your finger felt great but I
wished it was something bigger.”  

“Well it seems as if the lady would like a nice big cock in her ass,” Janet
says teasingly.  
  
“Do you plan on growing a cock tonight?” Carol laughed.  
  
“Not really but I have just the thing for you but let’s get you ready first,”
Janet replied.  
  
Janet rolls Carol over on her stomach and lifts her by her hips so that her
ass is in the air. The she wet one of her fingers with her own saliva and
rubbed it gently against the opening in Carol’s ass. Janet lubricated Carol’s
asshole with her spit before sliding one finger into her pressing it past her
sphincter. Janet pushed it in up to her knuckle and stroked it in and out of
Carol’s nether hole causing her to groan loudly. Janet then slid a second
finger into Carol’s ass and gently started to pry Carol’s asshole open. Janet
then pulled Carol’s cheeks apart and spit on her bum allowing her saliva to
dribble into Carol’s gaping hot asshole and then she probed Carol’s ass with
her tongue. Carol almost orgasmed then and there and she marveled in the
technique of the wonderfully experienced Janet. Janet continued to eat Carol’s
ass for a while longer dipping and probing Carol’s ass with her tongue. Then
Janet stopped and went over to her nightstand and retrieved a large strap-on
dildo and a tube of lubricant. Janet slipped on the harness and then snapped
the large dildo in place. Carol couldn’t believe how much Janet resembled a
boy with her athletic body, her short pixie hair, her almost flat chest and a
cock sticking out from her pubes. Janet approached Carol again with the lube
in her hands.  
  
Carol felt the cool soothing liquid enter her ass as it flowed slowly into her
and coated her anal passage. Janet began to rub the tip of the dildo against
Carol’s ass, teasing her and causing her to push back against fake cock in
frustration before Janet finally pushed it deep into her. Janet stroked the
thick rubber cock slowly and deeply into Carol’s ass and soon they were both
groaning in pleasure. As Janet thrust deeper and harder into Carol’s ass, the
strap-on base rubbed steadily against her already swollen red clit. Carol was
moaning loudly now and Janet’s fingers began to strum her clit as she fucked
her really deep and hard. Janet thrust the strap-on into Carol harder and
harder, stretching her tight little ass. The strap-on is rubbing Janet’s
swollen clit making it tingle and throb. Janet knows she is close to her
climax and she reaches around Carol and as she fucks her deep and hard and she
teases Carol’s pussy. Janet stroked and pinched Carol’s clit and let her
fingers slip into her wet cunt. With a few more thrusts of the strap-on Janet
goes over the edge and she cums hard; her body trembles in orgasm and her
juices run down the shaft of the dildo and into Carol’s cunt as well as down
her silky thighs. Almost instantaneously, Carol is cumming too, her body is
quaking and her pussy is gushing. Carol’s cum gushed all over Janet’s hand and
Janet brought her hand to Carol’s mouth allowing her to taste herself.  
  
As they caught their breath and calmed down Janet was the first to speak, “You
are more than welcome to spend the night here if you like.”  
  
“I would love to,” replied Carol and the two women snuggled up together and
gradually fell asleep.  
  
MARCIA, LAUREN AND A VOYEUR  
  
Carol’s daughter Marcia was spending the night with her best friend Lauren.
Marcia suspected that there was something going on with Lauren and Anna but
she wasn’t certain. Marcia had made up her mind that tonight that she would
press Lauren into telling her one way or the other. Marcia had never made it
with a girl and she often wondered what two girls would do together. Marcia
had lost her virginity last year but it wasn’t pleasant in fact all of her sex
sessions with the boys were disappointing. They were all the same they didn’t
think about her and they just wanted to get their rocks off.  
  
After dinner the two girls and Lauren’s mother Shirley watched TV for awhile
until Shirley decided to turn in for the night. Shirley said goodnight to her
daughter and Marcia and went to her bedroom. Lauren and Marcia then went to
Lauren’s bedroom to talk some more before Marcia went to bed in the guest
room. The two girls sat on Lauren’s bed taking about school, teachers and then
finally about sex. Marcia pressed Lauren to talk about her sex life after she
told Lauren about her experience with boys. Lauren shared her same
frustrations about sex with boys and then she admitted having sex with her
classmate and teammate Anna.  
  
Anna was a very intimidating 18 year old girl. She stood at six feet tall and
weighed about 160 pounds without an ounce of body fat. She was extremely
athletic, fit and beautiful with long brown hair. Anna reminded one of the
Amazon women that one would see in movies. She was a fanatic about working out
and she did so all the time. Anna was the team goalie and she was the reason
that Ridgeway didn’t have a worse season the year before. She was cat like in
the goal and she had been responsible for salvaging many a game with her
incredible play. Anna and Lauren had gotten close over the summer and that had
led to them having sex with each other. Lauren loved what Anna did to her
sexually but she was also afraid of the impressive girl. In addition to
soccer, Anna played volleyball, tennis and she had achieved a black belt in
karate.  
  
The talk between the girls had gotten them both a little hot. Lauren suggested
that Marcia stay with her in her room that night. The two girls changed into
their sleepwear, which were cotton tops and bikini bottoms. They both looked
at each other admirably as they scanned each other’s body. Lauren noticed a
wet spot in Marcia’s bottoms and she smiled at her friend lovingly.  
  
“Your pussy is wet. Are you turned on?” Lauren asked her.  
  
Marcia answered, “I guess so that story about Anna got to me a little.”  
  
“Let’s lay naked together for awhile,” Lauren suggested and then peeled off
her top and bottoms.  
  
Marcia stared at the pretty girl and she felt as she was looking at her self.
They could pass for sisters as they both had similar shapely figures. Marcia
however did not take her sleepwear off. Lauren moved to her knees and hooked
her fingers in the waistband of Marcia's panties. Lauren slowly peeled the
panties down and off of Marcia's body revealing a neatly trimmed pussy with a
little brown tuft of hair. Marcia lifted her legs one at a time as Lauren
removed her panties. Marcia was like a zombie as Lauren looked directly at the
teenager's snatch. Lauren touched Marcia's quim lightly with one finger and it
was like an electric shock going through Marcia's body. Marcia's body leaped
involuntarily. Lauren stood up and looked into the teenagers eyes and
whispered to her.  
  
"Your pussy is very wet. Have you ever been with another girl?" Lauren asked
sexily.  
  
Marcia just shook her head no unsure of what was next to come. Marcia was
struggling with her own desire and fear. Should she run out of the room or
should she let the beautiful Lauren have her way with her?  
  
Lauren didn't wait for a verbal answer from Marcia and just took her silence
as permission to continue the seduction. Lauren pulled the top over Marcia’s
head and exposed her beautiful tits, now both girls were naked. Lauren
embraced Marcia holding her close so that their tits mashed against each
others. Marcia could feel Lauren's hard nipples pressing into her own and her
pussy was on fire.  
  
A gasp came from Marcia, and she tried to pull away. Moving in closer and
pressing her against the bed Lauren brushed her lips against Marcia's
hungering for a taste of her sweet mouth. Marcia gave in and submitted to
Lauren parting her lips following Lauren's lead. As Lauren's tongue tasted
Marcia's mouth for the first time she shuddered with pleasure and delight as
she heard Marcia moan against her and Marcia's hot breath exhaled into
Lauren's waiting mouth.  
  
Marcia's tongue began to explore Lauren's lips, the soft tip running over her
and tentatively moving inside her. Lauren opened wider, allowing the young
girl's tongue to trace the ridges on the roof of her mouth. Lauren felt the
place between her legs grow hot, and she softly rubbed herself against the
girl in her arms, thrusting her hips against the teenager and rubbing her
pussy against Marcia's leg. Lauren's clit seemed to scream out with
frustration, the soft skin of the young girl teasing the flesh around it, but
the skin keeping it from getting any friction itself. Lauren moaned against
Marcia's lips, completely forgetting all her senses except for the arousal
flooding her and the feel of Marcia's lips against hers.  
  
Every part of Lauren's body ached for Marcia as she held her closer. Lauren
caressed the flat of Marcia's stomach running the tips of her fingers over her
abs. Lauren's fingers grew bolder as she traced the curve of Marcia's waist up
to the small curve of her bosom. Lauren ran her hand around Marcia's firm
breast and toyed with the semi-erect nipple. Pressing slightly harder Lauren
teased the nipple, running her thumb around Marcia's aureole. Marcia's tiny
nubs grew larger and poked out more obviously as Marcia let out a soft moan.  
  
Marcia's eyes were shut with her lips slightly parted and Lauren could see her
chest heave with each heavy breath she took. Lauren ran her fingers around in
circles, tracing her curves again, and then she traced down Marcia's body
again. Marcia moaned softly and thrust her breasts upwards as her legs were
slowly inched apart. Marcia allowed Lauren better access to her body without
even being aware of it. Marcia's hips thrust upwards in very slight movements
and Lauren smiled because she knew that Marcia now wanted what she wanted.  
  
Heat seemed to radiate from between Marcia's thighs and Lauren could feel the
warm air around her as Lauren's hand got closer and closer to her pussy. After
what seemed like an eternity of stroking her thigh Lauren's hand got close
enough to touch Marcia's little brown tuft of hair guarding her pussy. With
the tip of her first finger Lauren traced the shape of Marcia's pussy between
her legs and ran her finger up from Marcia's ass to her clit. Marcia gasped
and thrust towards Lauren again, her hips grinding against Lauren's hand.
Stroking her own pussy lightly Lauren looked down at Marcia's beautiful body.
Marcia was writhing in small movements of pleasure, her breasts and hard
nipples were standing straight out; her arms were at her sides with clenched
fists and her legs squirmed looking for more. Lauren at that moment wanted
more than anything to hold Marcia in her arms, to caress her bare body, to
taste her, to stroke her, to fuck her.  
  
Slowly Lauren sank to her knees and put Marcia's pussy level with her eyes.
Lauren licked her lips and reached for Marcia's legs. Marcia bucked forward,
her hips pushing her fragrant crotch closer to Lauren's face. The sweet scent
of Marcia's pussy filled Lauren's nostrils and she licked her lips once again,
trying to hold off contact with Marcia's pussy which was now right in front of
her face.  
  
Lauren traced Marcia's thighs with the tips of her fingers along Marcia's
silky smooth youthful skin. Marcia lifted upwards towards Lauren's face
moaning softly as she was as anxious for Lauren to taste her as Lauren was.  
  
Swiftly but gently Lauren kissed Marcia's exposed pussy lips peeking out from
underneath her tuft of brown hair. Marcia whimpered softly and thrust upwards
again toward Lauren's mouth. Lauren moved her mouth away from Marcia's hot
body teasing her and letting her eyes take in the beautiful form squirming on
the bed before her. Lauren smiled to herself as she knew that she had Marcia
exactly where she had hoped.  
  
The bed moved slightly as Marcia squirmed causing the bed covers to shift
underneath her hot lithe body. Marcia's hips writhed ever so slightly as she
covered her own tits with her hands and she cried softly under her breath.
Marcia's eyes opened and her lips parted and she moaned audibly as she made
eye contact with Lauren. Lowering her head Lauren once again turned her
attention to Marcia's fragrant quivering pussy.  
  
"Oh, Lauren," Marcia moaned.  
  
Lauren placed her hands on Marcia's knees and slowly peeled her thighs apart.
The slick wetness from Marcia's slit made a slushy noise as her pussy opened
in front of Lauren's face. Lauren pushed her knees even further apart and
licked her lips  
  
"I have wanted this from the first time I saw you Marcia," Lauren whispered
softly.  
  
Lauren eagerly put her mouth against Marcia's pussy allowing her lips to brush
against it and causing Marcia to moan again. Slowly Lauren snaked her tongue
out of her mouth and rubbed it against Marcia's hard clit. With the tip of her
tongue Lauren teased the nub, flicking it softly as she listened to Marcia's
cries of pleasure. Carefully Lauren moved her tongue down tracing the outline
of Marcia's slit, running her tongue along the lips and into the sopping skin
between them.  
  
Marcia's slick skin seemed to seep even more as Lauren lapped at it running
her tongue along the length of Marcia's slit and back up again. The taste of
Marcia was intoxicating and Lauren covered her snatch with her whole mouth.
Lauren opened her mouth wider and pushed her tongue inside Marcia's slit.
Lauren flicked at the inside of the teenagers pussy and darted out again and
ran her mouth up towards Marcia's clit again.  
  
Flicking her tongue rapidly Lauren brought Marcia's clit to an erection that
made her cry out with pleasure. Marcia moaned as Lauren ran the length of her
tongue over the hard nub. Lauren moved back and stretched for a moment.
Marcia's whimpers filled the room and she strained thrusting towards Lauren's
mouth with a yearning desire for more. Marcia's slit shimmered with her juices
and Lauren leaned forward to lick her some more.  
  
Lauren wrapped her lips around Marcia's clit and sucked it hard. Marcia cried
out in ecstasy and thrust her hips toward Lauren's face. Lauren moved her hand
up the teenager's leg and stroked the smooth skin with her fingertips until
her hand met Marcia's pussy. Lauren slid her first finger and then added her
middle finger into the slick folds of Marcia's cunt. Lauren wiggled her
fingers around inside Marcia as she sucked on her hard throbbing clit.  
  
Marcia cried out and tightened her pussy around Lauren's hand squeezing her
fingers. Lauren continued working her fingers in and out of Marcia's pussy and
sucked her clit even harder than before flicking Marcia's clit with her tongue
and tickling the tiny tip of the erect nub while she sucked on it.  
  
"Oh please, oh Lauren please!" Marcia cried.  
  
Lauren’s mother was sure that she heard groans coming from her daughter’s
bedroom so she got out of her bed to investigate. Shirley stood outside her
daughter’s door and it was clear that one of them was moaning in pleasure.
Then she heard Marcia call out her daughter’s name. Shirley quietly opened her
daughter’s bedroom door and pushed it open slowly until she could see inside.
In the dim light she saw her daughter with her face buried in the beautiful
Marcia’s pussy. Lauren shapely ass was pointed in the air as she was obviously
eating her friend’s pussy. Shirley was frozen to the spot as she watched the
two girls. They were so caught up in their own passion that they did not even
realize that they were being watched.  
  
Shirley watched as Marcia's hips humped Lauren's hand as she pumped her
fingers in and out of the teenager's pussy. Marcia's fragrant skin ground
against Lauren's face and her hips twisted and gyrated as she writhed on the
bed under Lauren's manipulations. Marcia's breathing became heavier and her
chest was rising and falling dramatically. Still sucking hard and pushing her
fingers in and out Lauren smiled to herself knowing that Marcia's climax was
approaching fast. Marcia's gyrations became more frantic, wilder, and
animalistic as she panted and lost control of her body. Marcia's hands grabbed
fistfuls of Lauren's hair as she shrieked piercingly as her pussy began to
spasm around Lauren's fingers.  
  
Shirley subconsciously let her hand wander to her own pussy as she watched the
two teenagers. Her fingers slipped inside her teddy and she fingered her
sopping wet pussy. Shirley had never seen two women make love before and now
right before her eyes her own daughter was with her beautiful friend. Shirley
wished that it were her between Marcia’s legs sucking on her pussy. Although
Shirley had never had sex with another woman she knew she would try it at that
moment as she watched Marcia turn and twist in ecstasy.  
  
With her fingers inside her Lauren ceased her pumping and wriggled them around
inside Marcia's soft flesh as she came in Lauren's mouth. Marcia's clit seemed
to grow larger as her hips pushed upwards and the juice flowed and covered
Lauren's face. Lauren inhaled her scent deeply and she groaned against Marcia
and sucked hard and long at her pussy until the teenager began to relax.  
  
Marcia's hips fell back down on the bed and Lauren released her clit. Lauren
slid her fingers out of Marcia's wet slit and gently planted kisses on her
thighs. Softly Lauren lapped at the girl's juices and licked her clean of her
orgasm as Marcia whimpered and shivered underneath Lauren's expert tongue.
Kissing her cooling thighs once more Lauren slid up on the bed and laid next
to the drained teenager on the mattress.  
  
Marcia lay silently for a few minutes with her lips parted as she breathed
shallowly through her mouth while her body lay limp next to Lauren. As Lauren
watched her and admired her soft features Marcia recovered from her orgasm and
slowly opened her eyes and smiled at Lauren. Looking into her eyes Lauren
smiled back at her and Marcia blushed slightly her cheeks turning pink as
Lauren looked into her face.  
  
"You have an incredible body, Marcia and you are very sensual," Lauren
whispered in her sultry tone.  
  
"You have to believe me I've never done anything like that," Marcia whispered
back, her soft voice barely audible and then she added, "I have never cum like
that in my life it was incredible."  
  
Marcia's nipples were standing half erect and her chest was still heaving with
each deep breath she took. Lauren heard the girl's excitement escape softly
through her lips as she slid her wet fingers over the teenager's breasts and
tickled the tiny nipples with the tips of her fingers. Marcia gasped audibly
as Lauren flicked the nipples as they grew wrinkled and hard underneath her
touch. Marcia groaned again and pushed her breasts up into Lauren's hand.
Sensing the girl's desire Lauren lowered her mouth down to one of the nipples
and nipped it lightly with her teeth. Marcia cried out and held Lauren firmly
to her breast.  
  
Marcia's hands reached up and wrapped around Lauren's bare breasts and her
nipples puckered as Marcia watched them come to life. With a small bit of
pressure Marcia pulled Lauren's chest down toward her own. Lauren lifted a leg
over Marcia's body and straddled her waist. Bending down Lauren's breasts
brushed against Marcia's and Lauren's nipples felt jolts of fire through her
body as they rubbed against teenagers. Their faces moved towards each others
and their lips sought each other meeting in a kiss of pure passion.  
  
Marcia reached up and held Lauren's head with her hand as her fingers ran
through the blonde's hair and their lips probed each other. Marcia breathed
deeply as she smelt and tasted herself for the first time, her juices still
fresh on her lover's lips. Marcia opened her mouth hungrily and Lauren quickly
parted her lips and allowing the girl's tongue to enter her mouth which she
began to explore.  
  
A moan escaped Marcia and Lauren felt her tremble yet again. Lauren felt the
girl's hands move down the length of her body and caress her skin. Gently she
guided Lauren's body up so that her mouth could find Lauren's breasts. She
gasped as Marcia's lips locked around one of her nipples and sucked deeply
emulating what Lauren had done to her earlier. Her hands cupped the cheeks of
Lauren's shapely ass and her youthful fingers softly massaged Lauren's hot
skin as she sucked long on Lauren's nipple. Marcia would leave one nipple wet
and chilled by the air as she moved to the opposite one and sucked again
driving Lauren wild.  

Throwing her head back Lauren opened her mouth as if to moan but no sound came
out. Marcia continued to play with Lauren's breasts as her teeth scraped
against the nipples and pinched them while her hands still dug into Lauren's
firm ass. Lauren reached up and grabbed onto the headboard of the bed to
support her body as she pushed her chest closer to Marcia's face. Marcia
grunted around Lauren's breast and she sucked even more into her mouth. Marcia
not only sucked on the nipple but on the whole area around it as if she were
trying to devour Lauren with the same hunger that Lauren had for the girl's
pussy earlier.  
  
Lauren's cunt was dripping wet and she could feel her juices flowing down her
thighs as she ground her hips against her classmate. The fire in Lauren's
nipples spread through her chest and belly to her pussy and ignited so much
passion inside her body she felt as if she may explode at any minute. Still
holding tightly to the headboard Lauren moved her hips up Marcia's body so
that she could place her pussy in front of the girl's mouth. Marcia
reluctantly released her mouth hold on Lauren's tits as the blonde moved her
pussy into place.  
  
With a moan of pleasure Marcia stretched and kissed Lauren's pussy. Her warm
lips made the blonde shiver as they caressed her lips and one of her hands
caressed Lauren's ass. As she breathed on Lauren's pussy the girl's warm
breath made her tingle. Lauren moaned out loud unable to control her own
gyrations as Marcia moved closer and closer to her pussy.  
  
At the first touch of her tongue Lauren nearly jumped out of her skin. Lauren
had experienced this many times before with Anna but there was something very
special and very erotic with this beautiful friend. She moaned loudly again as
Marcia's tongue timidly lapped at her cunt. Marcia shifted underneath her for
a better grip on Lauren's ass, and the hot tongue snaked out again and the
girl's hands tightened on Lauren's ass bringing her pussy closer to her face
as she licked Lauren's juices.  
  
Lauren moved her hips, gyrated, thrust, and whimpered as Marcia began to lick
her more insistently copying everything that Lauren had done to her. Marcia's
lips parted and she sucked on Lauren's skin, taking parts of her into her
mouth, sucking softly and then diving back inside Lauren's pussy with her
tongue. Marcia was inexperienced but she was a quick learner and was doing
well. Lauren cried out as Marcia's lips found her clit.  
  
With just the slightest brushes of Marcia's tongue and lips against her
sensitive clit Lauren felt her body go into convulsions. She felt the juices
flow out of her body and she cried out as her buttocks tensed in Marcia's
hands and she drove my pussy into her eager young girl's face. The orgasm
rocked Lauren's body as her pussy pulsed and her muscles tensed and she came
gushing onto Marcia's face.  
  
"Marcia!" Lauren cried out. "Marcia, don't stop, Oh God don't stop!"  
  
Marcia plunged her tongue deep inside Lauren drinking her juices as they
poured out of her body. Each lap of the young girl's long tongue sent more
shivers through Lauren's body, tingles shot up her spine, down through her
legs, around her arms and through her pussy. As it finally it ceased and
Lauren's body relaxed there were still slight tremors of aftershock shaking
her as she sat on Marcia's face. Marcia continued to lick Lauren tenderly
savoring the experience of her first girl on girl sex. Marcia's silky tongue
ran up and down Lauren's widespread slit as she remained motionless on top of
the beautiful young girl. With a reluctant groan Lauren shifted her body off
of Marcia and lay down on the bed next to her. Taking Marcia in her arms
Lauren pulled her naked body towards hers. Their skin sticky with sweat and
cum added to the eroticism of the moment as they held one another.  
  
Shirley quietly exited her daughter’s bedroom and closed the door. She
silently hurried back to her own bedroom and throw off her teddy. Shirley then
got in bed and frantically rubbed her own pussy and clit in her desire to cum.
Shirley closed her eyes and imagined that Marcia had come into her room and
that the beautiful girl was sucking on her pussy. As Shirley tried to picture
Marcia eating her pussy, images of her own daughter Lauren kept popping into
her mind. First in was Marcia eating her then it was Lauren. Shirley finally
achieved her orgasm and it rocked her body causing her to cover her mouth to
stifle her screams. It was the most intense climax she had had in quite some
time.  
  
LAUREN AND MARCIA HEAT UP THE MORINING WHILE SHIRLEY WATCHES  
  
Saturday morning and the two girls woke up in Lauren’s bed. Lauren turned to
Marcia took her in her arms and kissed her. Lauren then pulled back a little
looked into her beautiful dark eyes, then kissed her again with a little more
feeling. Marcia's eyes closed and she returned the kiss. Lauren slid her
tongue out slowly and gently slid it along Marcia's lips. Marcia's lips
loosened and Lauren pressed her tongue a little deeper. She felt Marcia's
teeth and pushed a little causing Marcia to emit a low moan as her mouth
opened and let Lauren's tongue into her sweet mouth. Lauren slid it inside and
her tongue met Marcia's and they probed and explored each other's mouth.
Lauren pulled her closer and their small breasts met and pressed against each
other. Lauren could feel Marcia's hot body press against her hard nipples.
Lauren stroked Marcia's warm back and her skin felt like velvet. They finally
broke apart to catch their breath. They just looked at each other and smiled  
  
"I like kissing you. Would you like for me to make love to you this morning?"
Lauren asked softly gazing into Marcia's brown eyes.  
  
Lauren leaned forward and kissed Marcia again. Marcia gave a little sigh and
closed her eyes as Lauren spoke to her, "If you want me to quit at any point
just say so. I love you very much and would never do anything to upset you or
end our friendship."  
  
Marcia's eyes opened and looked deep into her friend's and she said softly, "I
know!" Marcia closed her eyes again as if she were waiting for something
strange to happen.  
  
Lauren stroked Marcia's face and put a hand behind her head pulling Marcia
against her and kissed her. Lauren slid her tongue along Marcia's lips causing
her to tremble slightly and it felt wonderful. She stroked her friend's arm
gently over and over as they kissed. Lauren pushed her tongue into Marcia's
hot mouth exploring every inch of the interior. This was not totally new to
them but Lauren did not want to frighten Marcia at all. Lauren could actually
feel her own pussy tingle and her juices begin to flow in anticipation of what
was to happen. The same thing was happening to Marcia and her body trembled
slightly.  
  
They kissed for a long time, sucking on each other's tongues as they built up
courage to take it to the next step. Marcia lay still, not moving except to
press her head forward toward Lauren's lips. Lauren stroked her hair and felt
its smooth surface running through her fingers.  
  
Lauren ran her hands down Marcia's arm, then moved it to her hip and then slid
it upward over her chest. Lauren felt her friend tremble as her hand came near
Marcia's tiny breast. She stroked Marcia's velvet skin and felt the small rise
of her breast causing Marcia to moan. Lauren watched her hand move slowly over
her friend's small breast as she wanted to make this moment last. Marcia lay
back and her breast seemed even smaller as Lauren ran her hand over it and
slid it over her nipple. Marcia moaned softly and her thighs rubbed together
as Lauren was making her hot. Lauren was making herself hot too.  
  
"Do you want my hand down there? Do you want it on your pussy?" Lauren asked
already knowing the answer but wanting Marcia to tell her that she wanted it.  
  
Lauren's hand stroked Marcia's stomach and then Lauren moved her hand down a
little and felt Marcia's pubic hair tickle the tips of her fingers. Lauren was
on fire with desire and own pussy tingled.  
  
Marcia's breath rushed out as she gasped, "Oh, please! Please! I need it
there! You are setting me on fire," she moaned.  
  
"Are you sure you want it, want me to make love to you? Do you want my finger
inside you?" Lauren asked teasing her further.  
  
"Oh! Yes! Please Lauren, please! Do me. You are killing me!" Marcia cried out.  
  
Marcia spread her thighs a little as Lauren slid her hand down and cupped her
friend's pubic mound, curling her fingers down between her lover's thighs.
Marcia's hips thrust forward against Lauren's hand as she just held her hand
there, feeling Marcia's hot pussy against her fingers. Lauren kissed her again
and Marcia's tongue thrust out to meet hers and their lips slid sensuously
together. They breathed into each other's mouths as Lauren cupped her friend's
sweet pussy and their hearts seemed to be pounding a mile a minute.  
  
Lauren rubbed Marcia's pussy mound up and down before she let her middle
finger slip inward. Marcia was very wet and Lauren's finger slipped between
her pussy lips effortlessly and found her friend's hot inner flesh. Marcia
moaned into her lover's mouth as Lauren rubbed her finger up and down Marcia's
slit slowly, then curved it and slid it into her hot and very tight pussy.
Marcia's hot flesh surrounded the finger and Lauren slid it in and out slowly,
fucking her pussy gently. Marcia's body trembled slightly and her eyes went
wide as Lauren pulled her very wet finger out a little and ran it upward
feeling for Marcia's clit. Marcia gasped as her lover found the firm little
nub. Lauren rubbed her finger up and down over it the way she liked to
pleasure herself. Marcia pulled back from Lauren little grunts came from her
wide open mouth.  
  
"Oh God yes, please! Just like that! You're driving me crazy!" Marcia cried
out and Lauren was glad that no one else was in the house.  
  
Lauren ran her finger in little circles over Marcia's firm clit causing her to
moan and sob in ecstasy. Marcia's body grew taut against Lauren and then she
screamed out unintelligible moans and cries of pleasure as her sweet face
became distorted with passion. Lauren rubbed faster keeping the same amount of
pressure on Marcia's clit. Marcia's hips shot up and her head flew back as her
throat muscles were wire taut and she screamed over and over as she climaxed.
Lauren's finger became a blur as she stroked her lover's clit. Marcia finally
gave one last long scream and her body went limp. Marcia clamped her legs
together pinning Lauren's hand between her thighs and then she pushed her
lover's hand away.  
  
Marcia lay there gasping as Lauren took her finger and brought it to her nose.
Lauren sniffed Marcia's nectar and then she slipped it into her mouth and
tasted Marcia's juices. Lauren loved smelling and tasting Marcia's pussy
juices and she almost came herself. Lauren reached out and stroked Marcia's
pretty face as she lay there gasping for breath.  
  
"Oh Lauren, that was fantastic. I've cum before from a finger but it was never
anything like that," Marcia finally managed to say between gasps.  
  
"The only thing I did was stroke your clit!" Lauren replied smiling.  
  
"I know, but you got me so hot kissing me. Then it was just the thought of you
possibly making love to me," Marcia explained.  
  
"I know, we have missed a lot together we have to make up for lost time,"
Lauren promised.  
  
"You gave me a fantastic cum, now I want to give you one," Marcia said with a
tremor in her voice.  
  
As Marcia kissed Lauren her hand went to her breast cupping and fondling it.
Marcia caught her friend's nipple and rolled it between her fingers, gently
pulling on it. Lauren loved it and pressed her chest upward encouraging Marcia
to play with her tits. Marcia fondled and played with Lauren's tits and
nipples the same way Lauren had with hers. Lauren moaned and writhed on the
bed and just when Lauren thought she could stand it no more, Marcia's hand
went down her body, stroked her belly then moved lower to cup Lauren's pussy
mound. Lauren spread her thighs wide for her lover as Marcia slid her hand
down a little further and pressed her finger inward.  
  
"Oh, yes make me cum. Make me cum. I'm so hot. Please!" Lauren cried out.  
  
Marcia's finger moved down and slid up inside Lauren's pussy. Lauren moaned as
it felt so good. Lauren knew her pussy was dripping and as Marcia's finger
moved upward and inward, Lauren screamed when Marcia rubbed her clit. Marcia
did it just the way Lauren loved her to do it, moving it around in circles
over her hard nubbin. As Lauren lifted her hips upward toward her lover's
finger, Marcia moved down a little and slipped her other hand into Lauren's
pussy. Marcia pressed her finger down and found Lauren's opening and slid a
slick finger inside her driving her wild.  
  
Marcia had one finger inside Lauren fucking her and the other rolling her
clit. Lauren came like she had never cum in her whole life. Lauren screamed
and cried out as she threshed on her bed. Marcia stayed with her with one
finger thrusting up inside her hard and fast while she played Lauren's clit
with the other finger. Lauren came explosively but Marcia didn't let up and
kept finger fucking her and stroking her clit until Lauren had a series of
absolutely fantastic cums. Lauren weakly pushed Marcia's hands away as she
gasped for breath. Marcia moved beside her and kissed her cheek. They lay
kissing each other gently until they recovered.  
  
“Let’s do a 69 like Anna and I do,” Lauren suggested.  
  
“I don’t know what to do,” Marcia replied timidly.  
  
“Here I’ll show you and just do to me what I do to you,” Lauren said
excitedly.  
  
They stroked each other and kissed until they were both hot then they turned
around and kissed downward. They kissed and sucked each other's breasts for a
long while making their nipples pop up. Their breasts seemed to feel fuller
and more sensitive than ever. Lauren loved the sensation of sucking on
Marcia's puffy nipples and seeing how hard she could make them. Marcia's mouth
felt wonderful sucking on Lauren's breasts and nipples also. They continued to
kiss each other's body as they moved downward until they looked directly into
each other's pussy.  
  
They spread their thighs wide and they both hesitated for a moment that seemed
like an eternity. Lauren used her fingers to spread Marcia's pussy lips.
Marcia did the same to Lauren and the two girls stared at the other's teenage
pussy. Both of the girls complimented each other on how beautiful their
pussies were. They were neat with pink centers and they were both extremely
wet from their foreplay.  
  
Lauren took the initiative and she bent forward a little and kissed Marcia's
pussy right on the center causing her to jump. Lauren looked at her lover's
pink flower and slid her tongue out and licked it slowly. Marcia jumped again
and moaned loudly. Lauren licked it once again and this time she flattened her
tongue and ran it over Marcia's wet center. Marcia tasted delicious and Lauren
loved the scent of her lover's excited pussy. Up to now they had only fingered
each other and this was the closest they had ever been with their faces  
  
"Marcia you taste so good, so sweet. Are you okay? Are you going to lick me
too?" Lauren asked with her pussy on fire awaiting some attention.  
  
Marcia whispered, "I don't know, I'm not sure about it."  
  
Marcia was still a little hesitant as it was quite a big step for her. Marcia
had always been shy and she was struggling within herself as she stared at
Lauren's pussy.  
  
Lauren had crossed the line and she certainly knew what she wanted to do.
Lauren licked Marcia's sweet pussy again and again as she reveled in the smell
and taste of her. She was so fresh and so innocent. Lauren pointed her tongue
and slid it inside her lover's tight pussy and pressed downward extending her
tongue as far as she could inside Marcia's quim. Lauren sucked her and tasted
her sweet juices. Then Lauren pressed down even more mashing her lips against
Marcia's snatch and then she sucked harder. Marcia's sweet juices flowed out
of her pussy as Lauren slid her tongue in and out of Marcia's cunt. Marcia
moaned out loud and then Lauren felt the wonderful sensation of Marcia's wet
lips on her pussy. Marcia had finally taken the last step and kissed Lauren's
pussy.  
  
Lauren licked and sucked her lover and felt Marcia's tongue play over her
pussy again and again. They were making love to each other just as they had
imagined. Lauren put her hands under Marcia's butt and pulled her lover's hips
against her face. They wiggled their faces against their pussies groaned with
pleasure, their moans muffled by the other's pussy.  
  
Marcia pulled back just a little and moved her head down a little and explored
Lauren's slit with her tongue. She found the small firm bud of Lauren's clit
causing her to cry out. Marcia sucked it and flicked it with her tongue over
and over. Marcia heard her lover scream and felt her body go rigid. Marcia
continued to flick Lauren's clit as fast as her tongue would go and Lauren
thrashed against her as Lauren's face thrust against Marcia's pussy. Lauren's
body writhed against Marcia's but Marcia managed to keep her mouth against her
lover's pussy and she sucked and tongued her clit until Lauren had at least
two screaming climaxes.  
  
Marcia knew her clit is very sensitive after a climax so she slid her tongue
back to her lover's pussy and sucked and lapped at her opening again and
again. Lauren's sweet juices were very abundant and Marcia drank all of the
sweet nectar. Marcia marveled that she was doing this to her best friend for
the very first time.  
  
Their motions became frantic and they licked and sucked their firm swollen
clits while their fingers located and stroked their G-spots. Marcia was the
first to climax and her body bowed up and her pussy slammed against Lauren's
mouth. Lauren sucked her clit and ran her finger around inside Marcia's sweet
sex. She felt Marcia's pussy clamp down on her finger as she screamed out her
passion. Suddenly Lauren felt a gush of juice against her lips and she moved
her mouth down a little and let it squirt into her mouth.  
  
Marcia's sweet delicious pussy juice shot into Lauren's sucking mouth and she
let it flow over my tongue, savoring the taste before she swallowed it. As
gush after gush shot into her mouth, it made Lauren so hot that she too
exploded. Lauren cried out in ecstasy and her own hips pushed against Marcia's
mouth and probing finger. They seemed to feed off of each other's passions and
their climaxes seemed endless as they went on and on. Wave after wave of
ecstasy shot through their bodies as they soared together from climax to
climax. The young girls lost count of their climaxes but it was the most
fantastic thing that had ever happened to them in their entire lives. They
moaned, cried, and screamed as their bodies writhed and hunched together until
they collapsed. The girls lay together for a long time as they were totally
spent and drained. They rested as they recuperated from their fantastic series
of mind blowing orgasms  
  
"Did you know that you spurted?" Marcia asked Lauren.  
  
Lauren was astonished that she had and replied, "No, but I know you did. Your
pussy gushed out and hit me right in the mouth and I loved it. It was
wonderful. Did you like mine?"  
  
"Oh yes I did. It was delicious. Do all women cum like that I wonder?" Marcia
questioned.  
  
The two girls huddled in Lauren's bed and they rested naked in each other's
arms. They had never felt closer than they did at this very moment. Marcia had
taken a major step but she still had so much to learn and Lauren was looking
forward to teaching her everything that she had learned with Anna.  
  
The two girls never realized that they were observed again that morning by
Lauren’s mother. Shirley had closed Lauren’s door and returned to her own room
to shower and dress. Once in the shower Shirley ran her hands all over her
body stroking her breasts and thighs before finally sinking her fingers into
her pussy. Once again she pictured herself making love with the two teenagers
and she had another incredible orgasm. Shirley dressed, ate breakfast and then
drove to the mall where she worked. All the way there she kept thinking about
the two girls and she wondered if they would make love all day. Shirley worked
at a boutique and this day she would notice the pretty young girls shopping
there more than she had in the past. All she imagined herself in bed with one
of the girls that she waited on. She knew she would have to do something soon
or she would go crazy with desire. Shirley would have to find a way to cross
the line and to finally make love with another woman. She never knew that she
had such deep dark desires but the two teenagers had brought them out in her.  

Shirley received a phone call from her daughter asking if Marcia could stay
another night. Shirley tried to hide her excitement when she agreed. She would
look forward to spying on the two of them again and wondered what she might
see this time. Shirley felt her own pussy start to heat up again and went off
to the ladies room to take care of her immediate desire.  
  
JANET LEARNS ABOUT MARIA  
  
The next morning Janet and Carol decided to try out the double dildo on each
other. They got on the bed and kissed and caressed until they were aroused and
ready to try the long dildo. Janet took the dildo and liberally coated the
entire length with lubricant. Janet placed one end against her pussy and slid
it into her sweet pussy for four or five inches. Next she placed the other end
against Carol and slid it into her hot pussy. It slid in some four inches
inside her. They giggled as they worked their bodies toward each other and it
slid inside their pussies.  
  
They made a fascinating sight as they moved together and the long dildo slid
further inside them. Janet had measured it and found it to be 19 inches long
with a set of balls in the middle. That left 9 inches on either end. Carol
didn't think she could get it all in and she was right. Carol was the first to
say that she could not take any more inside her but Janet already had her end
in up to the fake balls. There was a portion still left on Carol's end.  
  
They reached down and began to stroke their own clits as they fucked each
other. They were soon were breathing heavily and Carol was the first to cum.
Her hips lifted off the bed and her fingers flew over her swollen clit. Janet
was not far behind her and she too moaned, and her hips rotated and thrust as
she too climaxed. They both agreed that that was enough sex for the morning.  
  
“Carol normally I would invite you to hang around today but I have a visitor
coming over just after lunch and you may not want to bump into her. It is
Maria the new Spanish teacher and soccer coach,” Janet told her.  
  
“Yes I agree it probably would not be a good thing plus I should get home
before my daughter Marcia anyway,” Carol agreed.  
  
Janet and Carol had a light breakfast together and then Carol departed. They
promised to see each other again soon.  
  
After lunch Maria arrived at Janet’s home and Janet invited her in. Janet took
in Maria’s beauty and shapely figure as she directed her into the family room.
Maria was wearing very tight jeans that hugged her shapely legs and showed off
her killer ass. She also wore a tank top that barely held her firm tits and
her nipples poked through the material. Janet felt a stirring in her loins and
secretly wished that she could get Maria into bed. They made small talk and
Janet offered Maria a glass of wine before they got to the reason for Maria’s
visit.  
  
“Janet I would like it if you would be willing to help me out with the soccer
program. I really need a good assistant coach,” Maria asked her.  
  
“Wow that is a surprise. What about last year’s coach Mrs. Sampson isn’t she
expecting to be involved?” Janet asked in reply.  
  
“I don’t know if she is expecting it but I do not want her involved. Given the
past record of the team I think it is better to have new faces on the coaching
staff,” Maria answered.  
  
“Well I am flattered and yes I would love to help out although I am not that
familiar with were your coaching style,” Janet accepted.  
  
“Great and don’t worry about the style you will catch on very quickly. I plan
to whip the team into shape and we will be very demanding on them physically,”
Maria said and then added, “I watched films from last year and our girls were
always fatigued by the second half. That will change this year.”  
  
Janet was excited by the opportunity and with Maria philosophy on physical
conditioning. “I couldn’t agree with you more about their poor condition last
year,” Janet confirmed.  
  
“Janet may I use your bathroom please,” Maria asked.  
  
“Oh sure it’s right down the hall there and I’ll get us another glass of
wine,” Janet told her and then went into the kitchen to get the wine.  
  
Maria found the bathroom and as she used the toilet she noticed the two dildos
soaking in the tub. Maria smiled to herself as she looked at the two dildos in
the tub. One was obviously a strap-on and the other was the double dildo that
Janet and Carol had just used that morning. Apparently Janet had forgotten
about them in the tub. Maria decided to have some fun with Janet and she took
the double dildo out of the tub and dried it off.  
  
Maria walked back into the family room carrying the double dildo in one hand
and slapping it into the palm of the other hand. Janet looked up and saw her
and she turned beet red with embarrassment.  
  
“It looks like someone had fun here last night,” Maria said cynically.  
  
“Oh my God, I forgot all about the tub. I am so embarrassed. I am so sorry,”
Janet apologized.  
  
“So tell me Janet, male or female?” Maria asked with a laugh.  
  
“Female of course although there are a few pricks I know that I would like to
shove that up their ass,” Janet giggled.  
  
Maria laughed as well and then walked over to Janet and stood close to her,
“So should we properly seal our agreement as coach and assistant coach?” Maria
asked in a sexy voice.  
  
Maria took Janet in her arms and she was putty in this Spanish girl's hands as
she stroked Janet’s hair and kissed her lightly on the cheek. The smoothness
of her touch and delicate stroking was electrifying to Janet and she felt as
though her entire body was paralyzed. Maria turned Janet’s body onto hers and
their entire bodies were touching each other and it was a very erotic feeling.
As Maria began to kiss Janet her lips were soft and moist and made her inner
being come alive with desire. Maria’s hands went underneath Janet’s tee shirt
and located her tiny braless tits and manipulated Janet’s rock hard nipples
between her fingers.  
  
"Let me make love to you," Maria said softly.  
  
Then she lifted the tee shirt over Janet’s head baring her entire upper body.
She told Janet how cute her titties were and how delicious her nipples tasted.
Maria then began a slow torturous journey down Janet’s body using her mouth to
taste and caress every inch of her skin. Maria unfastened the buttons on
Janet’s tight jeans and slowly pulled them down her hips. Janet automatically
raised her hips to make it easier for Maria to remove the jeans. Maria took
them of Janet’s legs and tossed them aside. Then her hands returned to Janet’s
bikini panties and she tucked her fingers into the elastic band and
painstakingly slid them down and off of her legs. Janet was totally naked on
her sofa and Maria stood to remove all of her own clothes. Janet was in
disbelief about how this has happened so quickly and how this beautiful
Spanish woman that everyone lusted after was about to make love to her.  
  
Maria lay back down with Janet on the sofa and their bodies came together.
Janet’s breathing became shallow and her moans became loudly audible. Janet
began touching Maria's body now and she marveled in our mutual beauty. Maria
began to purr in ecstasy. It seemed natural for them to be together and not
taboo to be female lovers. As Maria's tongue circled Janet’s right nipple she
became increasingly aware that it was not going to take much more to make her
cum. Janet felt Maria's fingers stroke my wet mound locating her puffer pussy,
trying to find her way inside her. Janet moved her legs further apart trying
to help Maria and soon Maria was fingering her with soft, slow, tender probes.  
  
Janet couldn't take it any longer and she gently pushed Maria’s head down.
Maria nestled herself between Janet’s legs and she used her hands to slowly
open them and placed Janet’s thighs on her shoulders. With one finger Maria
traced the soft outer lips of Janet’s swollen pussy and applied gentle
pressure spreading them open even further. Janet felt the familiar butterflies
in her stomach as Maria gazed upon the sight of her moist lips inviting the
invasion. Maria put more fingers inside Janet and caressed her inner walls
while the thumb positioned itself on the tip of Janet’s swelling clit and
lightly tickled it back and forth.  
  
Maria moved herself slowly up my body as she continued to finger fuck Janet’s
pussy she kissed and licked her way to Janet’s tiny tits. Maria took turns
holding each elongated nipple between her soft lips sucking and flicking at
Janet’s hard nipples. Janet in turn reached for Maria's beautiful firm breasts
and she felt her hard nipples across her palms as she stroked them. Janet
pinched and rolled Maria’s nipples between her fingers while Maria tongued her
breasts. Maria whispered that she had to have Janet and then she kissed her
passionately. They moaned into each other's mouth as Maria’s fingers and thumb
tickled Janet’s swollen clit. Janet could feel the wetness of Maria’s pussy
saturating her thigh.  
  
Maria broke off our kiss and smiled at Janet before descending toward her
aching pussy. As Maria reached Janet’s wet mound she separated the lips fully
opening her pink moistness and then she herself groaned with anticipated
pleasure. The tip of Maria’s tongue touched Janet’s center and her sweet
liquid gushed into Maria’s mouth. Maria was unprepared for Janet’s gusher but
none the less she licked at her silky lips, losing herself in the feeling of
Janet’s beautiful hot body. Maria flattened her tongue and stroked Janet’s
center up and down firmly enough that she could feel it on her clit. Maria
drove Janet mad as her swollen clit twitched and ached for more attention.
Janet arched her back and pulled Maria’s head to her mound trying to shove her
engorged clit into the Spanish girl’s mouth much like a man would shove his
cock into a woman's mouth. Maria wrapped her lips around Janet’s swollen
button and sucked her little dick. Janet gasped as Maria's lips sucked her
clit in further and further causing a strong tremor to run through her whole
body.  
  
Janet’s hips lifted off of the sofa as Maria sucked on her clit flicking it
back and forth as the coach’s fingers probed deep inside her. Maria worked
them in and out slow at first and then with more intensity as her tongue
firmly, methodically pressed again and again against Janet’s erect clit which
was now totally exposed from its hood. At this point Janet’s groans became
very loud, her body was rocked with orgasm and she ground her pussy into
Maria's face which was covered with her sweet love juices that gushed as the
dam broke.  
  
Maria continued to lap at the hard clit as Janet’s body convulsed with one
orgasm after another. Slowly Janet’s body relaxed after the last of one of the
most intense climaxes she ever had. Janet lay back on the sofa as Maria moved
up to her lips and covered them with hers, kissing Janet tenderly, deeply and
letting her tongue slip past Janet’s lips so she could taste herself in her
mouth. Janet kissed Maria eagerly in return, loving the sweet taste of her own
nectar. They lay on the sofa cradled in one other's arms without saying a word
savoring the feel of a woman's body in each other's arms.  
  
"Come Janet let's go into your bedroom I want you to make love to me now,"
Maria said taking Janet’s hand and leading her into her own bedroom.  
  
Maria lay in the bed in all her beauty and held her arms out to me, "Come to
me Janet, come and make love to me," Maria called softly to her.  
  
Maria opened her legs and guided Janet between her thighs. Janet looked right
at her beautiful pussy and she leaned forward and slowly stuck out her tongue.
She took one, slow lick as she flattened her tongue on Maria's trimmed mound.
It felt so smooth and warm and Janet had achieved the desired effect from the
moan she knew that Maria enjoyed it. Janet enjoyed the taste of her and she
kept licking and eating her. Janet pointed her tongue and burrowed into
Maria’s pussy as it parted her labia and Janet’s tongue was rewarded with the
exquisite taste of her juice. Soon Janet was like a puppy at a saucer of milk,
licking and lapping up as much as she could as fast as she could.  
  
Maria was obviously enjoying what Janet was doing and she reached down with
both hands and spread herself wide making it so much easier for Janet’s tongue
to explore her pussy. Janet’s tongue explored all of Maria as her mind took
notes of what seemed to turn Maria on. Maria was breathing rapidly and she
moaned softly whenever Janet got near her hard pearl. As Janet searched out
her hard clit still just barely hidden she tensed and began to quiver. After
Janet felt like she had teased Maria’s opening as much as she could with her
tongue it was time to see Maria’s reaction when Janet’s tongue finally touched
that pearl just as she had done to her earlier.  
  
Janet burrowed her tongue as deep into Maria as she could and then she just
sort of licked and sucked her way up. When Janet got to her pearl she used the
very tip of her tongue to push back the little hood. Janet was truly amazed at
its size and she flicked her tongue over it once and then used the tip to
explore the folds of flesh on either side of it. Maria was now moaning and she
used her fingers to pull her hood back as she arched herself so that her pearl
stuck out even further like a little cock. Janet nuzzled it with her nose
taking in Maria’s scent and she licked it once more before she took it between
her teeth and gently nibbled it.  
  
Maria went wild and started bucking and calling out Janet’s name. She let go
of her own fleshy hood and pulled Janet’s head to her pussy as she cried out
in ecstasy. Janet sucked her clit as deep in her mouth as she could and Maria
humped her face for all she was worth. Janet was excited that she was able to
get Maria that excited and she sucked harder and played with Maria’s wonderful
toy with her lips, tongue and teeth. Janet didn't know exactly how many times
Maria came but finally she finally went stiff and then collapsed on the bed,
her body in spasms. As Janet lay there she reveled in the beauty of the
Spanish teacher who lay next to her. Not in her wildest dreams did she imagine
that the two of them would be in Janet’s bed after having made love to each
other.  
  
"That was beautiful you were marvelous," Maria sighed.  
  
Janet was turned on again and she lay on my back next to Maria and her hands
went to her pussy. Janet started to finger herself anxious to cum yet again.
Janet didn’t pay attention when Maria got off the bed and left the room.
Janet’s eyes were closed and she was furiously flicking her clit when Maria
returned.  
  
"Janet I have a surprise for you," Maria said in a sultry tone.  
  
Janet opened my eyes and saw Maria standing by the bed wearing Janet’s strap-
on dildo. Janet was surprised and then taken with Maria’s sultry figure
sporting a fake dick. Maria knelt on the bed between Janet’s legs and pressed
her lips down hard on Janet’s kissing me until her lips parted and Maria’s
tongue entered her mouth. Janet reached down and wrapped her hand around the
fake cock that was touching her inner thighs. Without a word Maria moved
Janet’s legs apart and slid the flexible dong into her soaking wet pussy.
There was no resistance at all Janet was so wet that the head slipped in
easily.  
  
As Maria slid the fake cock inside Janet she lifted her knees, closed her eyes
and surrendered herself to Maria. Janet gave into her and was resolved to
accept whatever was to come next. Then Janet felt something fierce burst
inside her as Maria thrust her hips in one hard fast motion driving into Janet
causing her to cry out. Janet grasped the bed sheets and her cries got louder
with each thrust of Maria's cock into her.  
  
"Harder, harder fuck me harder," Janet screamed thrusting her hips up to meet
Maria, "Oh God, yes, it’s so good!"  
  
Maria hooked her arms under Janet’s knees and held on as her thrusts became
harder and faster. Janet could feel that tension building again that sweet
fire that she so often sought and the pressure was mounting. Without warning
Janet screamed out as her body suddenly tensed and arched up off the bed. Her
cumming pushed Maria over the edge and they both exploded together. Maria
collapsed on top of Janet her breasts pressed against Janet’s chest. They lay
quietly with the fake cock still buried in Janet’s pussy until Maria rolled
off her and lay on her back next to Janet. Janet looked down at Maria and the
saw the menacing dildo pointing in the air. It looked obscene on Maria's
shapely female body.  
  
Janet thought to herself, "That she just had one of the best fucks of my
life."  
  
Janet and Maria lay side by side resting and recuperating from their intense
fuck session. Maria was anticipating the next round and she would have Janet
fuck her with the strap-on. Janet was also looking forward to fucking Maria
and playing with her firm tits as she fucked her. Janet wondered if Maria did
anal; her ass was so hot. Their thoughts were interrupted when the telephone
rang and Janet got out of bed to answer it. Carol called and told Janet that
her daughter Marcia would be staying with her friend again tonight and then
Carol asked if Janet would like some company again. Janet told her to come
over whenever she was ready.  
  
Janet turned to Maria and said, “We are going to have company in about an
hour.”  
  
Maria looked at her quizzically and the then Janet told her about the Carol.
Janet told her how hot Carol was and how hot her daughter Marcia was too.
Maria smiled at the possibilities and swung her legs out of bed.  
  
Maria held the strap-on in her hand and said, “Well I guess we better wait for
awhile before you use this on me,” and then asked, “Are you sure Carol will be
okay with a threesome?”  
  
“I’m sure you should have seen her take that it her ass. I bet she would love
a double fuck from us,” Janet replied.  
  
The two pretty teachers and coaches decided to shower before Carol arrived.
After the shower Janet gave Maria a pair of sweats to wear and the two of them
awaited Carol’s arrival. Maria’s shapely figure was well concealed by the
sweat outfit and she thought to herself how surprised Carol would be once they
all had their clothes off again. This had been quite a weekend for Janet and
she was only half way through it.  
  
STEPHANIE RECRUITS ANOTHER SOCCER MOM  
  
Vicki arrived at Stephanie’s home as she had been invited to discuss the
soccer team with her. Vicki knew that Stephanie would ask her to help out with
the soccer program this year and that she was recruiting soccer Moms to assist
the new coach. Stephanie had told Vicki that she could bring her daughter
Trudy and that she could hang out with Gretchen and Erica her daughters. Trudy
opted not to come as she told her mother that there was something on TV that
she really wanted to watch. The truth was that Trudy had gotten her hands on a
lesbian movie and she had been waiting for an opportunity to watch it alone.
Stephanie opened the door and invited Trudy into her home and led her to the
family room.  
  
Gretchen and Erica were in the family room when Vicki entered with Stephanie.
They were both wearing tight short shorts with tube tops. The outfit showed
off the girl’s curves and it was clear that they were not wearing bras or
panties. The tube tops followed the contour of their breasts and their hard
nipples were poking through the material. The shorts were so tight that the
material gathered in their vulvas and accentuated their perfect round asses.
Vicki stared at the two twins taking in their beauty and bodies. Stephanie
introduced Vicki to her daughters and she noticed Vicki’s apparent interest in
their bodies.  
  
Vicki had been divorced for less than a year and she had not even kissed
anyone in a long time. Her husband left her for a younger woman and left town.
Vicki had been without sex for quite some time and that was mostly her fault.
She had tired of the mandatory sex when her husband would mount her and cum in
her. She got no enjoyment from sex with her husband and she didn’t do anything
to make it interesting. Vicki had had opportunities to date but she turned
them down as she was sure that they would all end up the same way. At work a
woman had befriended her and was showing more than a casual interest in her.
Vicki had never been with a woman but it had been on her mind more and more
lately. Vicki could be described as cute but sophisticated and even
unapproachable. She was 5’5” and 105 pounds with shoulder length blonde hair.
She had a nice shape with 32A breasts, shapely legs and cute round ass. On
more than one occasion the woman at the office had let her hand brush over
Vicki’s ass as if accidentally. Vicki was starting to enjoy the attention and
occasional contact with her ass. It was kind of a turn on for her.  

“Girls would you excuse us please, Vicki and I have some business to discuss,”
Stephanie asked her daughters.  
  
“Certainly mother,” they said in unison and then walked slowly past Vicki
putting their bodies on display.  
  
“It’s too bad that Trudy couldn’t join us, maybe next time,” Erica said in a
sultry tone.  
  
Vicki felt tingles run through her body as the pretty twins passed close to
her. She was sure that she saw Erica run her tongue over her lips as she
spoke. Vicki was in awe of these two teenagers who appeared to be very mature
for their age. Her trance was broken when Stephanie spoke to her.  
  
“Come and sit down and I will get us some wine. Do you like wine or would you
prefer something else?” Stephanie asked.  
  
“Wine would be wonderful,” Vicki replied noticing a crack in her voice.  
  
Stephanie left the room to get the wine and Vicki tried to compose her self.
She just realized that the twins had gotten to her. She had never thought of
sex with women until recently and now she was turned on by the two teenagers.
Vicki tried to imagine them naked in bed with each other and tried to imagine
what they would do with each other. Her naughty thoughts were interrupted when
Stephanie returned with a bottle of wine and a couple of glasses. For the
first time Vicki noticed the pretty German woman and it was obvious where her
daughters got their looks and figures.  
  
Stephanie poured the wine and the two of them began talking about the soccer
program. Stephanie explained how she was assisting Maria the new coach and
forming a soccer Moms group to help out. Vicki was very interested in helping
out when she could and she told Stephanie that she was happy that someone was
doing something for the program. They continued to talk about the program and
sip their wine and before long the first bottle was gone. Stephanie opened
another bottle and although Vicki knew she stop after two glasses she didn’t.
She was enjoying herself and the company of this very pretty German woman.
Vicki had not been out for some time and she was very comfortable with
Stephanie. The talk eventually worked its way around to personal lives and
Vicki and Stephanie shared their failed marriage and bad husband experiences.
Stephanie put down her glass of wine and reached over, trailing her hand along
Vicki's arm and down to her hand. She took the glass of wine from Vicki's hand
and set it on the end table. Vicki looked at her with a half smile on her
face.  
  
"What are you doing," she said breathlessly.  
  
"Hush and relax, I know what you want," Stephanie said.  
  
Stephanie trailed her fingers back up Vicki's arm, stopping at the inside of
her elbow. Here she drew lazy circles with her fingernail. Vicki started
fidgeting nervously and smiled. She moved her hand farther up her arm,
stopping on the top of her shoulder and raking her nails along the baby
sensitive skin. Vicki shuddered involuntarily and Stephanie took this as a
sign to continue the seduction. She moved her hand to the side of Vicki's neck
and trailed her finger up behind her ear then she moved her lips to Vicki's
ear and blew softly causing her to gasp audibly. Stephanie used her tongue and
trailed it along the inside of Vicki's ear very lightly and then stuck it in
her ear making it very wet. Stephanie then blew on her wet ear sending a chill
through her new recruit.  
  
Vicki shuddered again and she knew that she stop this before it went any
further. But whether it was the wine or her curiosity or both she allowed
Stephanie to continue. Stephanie followed Vicki's jaw line with her tongue
until she got to the corner of her mouth, then she flicked her tongue lightly
at the corner of Vicki's mouth and then ran her tongue along the woman's
luscious lips. Vicki hadn't kissed anyone for months and she allowed her lips
to part slightly as Stephanie put her lips on hers. She gently coaxed Vicki's
lips farther apart with her tongue and probed the inside of her mouth. Her
hand trailed down Vicki's neck to her breast. Stephanie cupped her small
breast through her shirt and bra and flicked her thumb over her hardening
nipple. Vicki was surprised when she felt her nipple harden and come to
attention. Stephanie kept up the exploration of Vicki's mouth with her tongue
French kissing her as she gently pinched Vicki's nipple between her thumb and
forefinger.  
  
Vicki thought again that she should stop Stephanie but it felt so good and she
had been so starved for attention that she let it continue. Plus she thought
to herself she could always stop Stephanie before she went too far. Vicki
moaned loudly and arched her back as Stephanie moved her hand under Vicki's
shirt and raked her nails across the woman's belly. Stephanie reached behind
Vicki and with one hand expertly unhooked her bra. The Stephanie moved her
hand up and cupped Vicki's small bare breast allowing the roundness to fill
her hand. She rubbed her thumb across her neighbor's bare nipple and felt the
electricity that flowed through Vicki's body. Stephanie pushed the shirt and
bra up over Vicki's chest and lowered her mouth to suck in her nipple.
Stephanie gently nibbled on Vicki's hard nub sending chills throughout the
woman's body. Vicki groaned aloud with desire.  
  
Stephanie moved her hands quickly and seemingly in one movement removed
Vicki's shirt and bra revealing her beautifully smallish breasts and very hard
nipples. Vicki was caught off guard that everything happened so fast.
Stephanie quickly covered Vicki's nipples with her mouth kissing and nibbling
one and then switching to the other. She could hear Vicki's breathing getting
faster and shallower. Vicki let out a moan and grabbed her head as if to push
her away but she didn't.  
  
"We really should stop. I really don't want to do this," Vicki said rather
unconvincingly.  
  
Stephanie ran one of her hands under Vicki's skirt and up the insides of her
thigh toward the woman's vulva. Stephanie touched the panty covered pussy and
felt the heat and moisture of Vicki's steamy cunt.  
  
"I would say that your pussy disagrees with you," Stephanie said and then
continued to suck on Vicki's tits and nipples.  
  
"Oh, that does feel good. It's been so long. Please don't stop," Vicki said
breathlessly holding Stephanie's head tightly to her bosom.  
  
"Don't worry," Stephanie replied, "I have no intention of stopping."  
  
Stephanie then trailed her tongue down Vicki's breast and stomach and dipped
her tongue into her belly button. Stephanie continued to run her hands over
Vicki's thighs and gently brushed her fingers over the sopping wet material of
her panties. She could feel the moisture soaking through Vicki's panties and
smiled to herself in victory. Her tongue continued to roam across Vicki's
stomach and Stephanie let her fingers dance on the woman's panties emitting
more moans from Vicki.  
  
Stephanie grabbed the waistband of Vicki's skirt and she pulled it down along
with her panties very slowly. Vicki was totally confused as her mind told her
one thing and her body another. She didn't stop Stephanie as she told herself
she would instead she lifted her hips making it easier for her neighbor to
remove her skirt and panties. Now Vicki was totally naked in front of her
seductress.  
  
Stephanie smiled at Vicki and slid her finger down her slit. Stephanie teased
the woman's clit by gently nicking it with her nail. Vicki's body leaped in
response to her sensitive clit and she gasped out loud.  
  
"Do you still want me to stop?" Stephanie said  
  
Vicki just shook her head no as she was unable to get any words out. She was
overcome with lust as Stephanie rubbed her finger along the engorged clit and
slit of her pussy. Vicki realized that she was extremely wet as she felt her
wetness running out of her pussy and in between the cheeks of her ass. She
finally resolved herself to the fact that there was no turning back now. Vicki
had totally forgotten about Stephanie’s daughters and any chance that they may
walk in on them.  
  
Stephanie gently spread Vicki's pussy lips and flicked her tongue along the
inside of her neighbor's pussy. Vicki nearly jumped out of her skin with the
initial contact of Stephanie's warm tongue on her pussy. It had been years
since anyone had eaten her pussy and she just couldn't believe the feeling of
Stephanie's tongue.  
  
Stephanie could tell by Vicki's reaction to her tongue lapping that she was on
the brink of her first orgasm. Stephanie again flicked her tongue inside her
neighbor's pussy and let it travel up from Vicki's vagina to her clit. She
pointed her tongue and slowly drew circles on the flat space under Vicki's
clit. Vicki tensed up and she moved her hips trying to get Stephanie's mouth
to stay on her clit. In desperation Vicki moved her hands to her pussy and
pulled back the hood exposing her clit. Stephanie saw this and she flicked her
pointed tongue quickly over Vicki's exposed flesh feeling it harden with each
stroke.  
  
"Oh God Stephanie, don't stop please, make me cum. I’m going to cum. I'm
cumming Stephanie, oh Stephanie!" Vicki screamed as her body thrashed around
with the intensity of her orgasm.  
  
Stephanie continued tongue fucking her and playing with her clit and Vicki
could not stand it anymore as her body went rigid. Vicki moaned and lifted her
hips toward Stephanie's face as if she were trying to get the tongue deeper
into her pussy. Stephanie grabbed Vicki's and she continued with her tongue
lapping and squeezed Vicki's shapely ass at the same time. This final act took
Vicki over the edge with a mind numbing orgasm.  
  
Stephanie smiled to herself in conquest and slowly withdrew her tongue from
her neighbor's pussy. She was not done by any means yet but she would let
Vicki take a few minutes to recover. As Stephanie felt Vicki's body relax and
sensed her relaxed state, she slowly ran her tongue up the inside of her pussy
and Vicki jumped with surprise.  
  
"What, not again," Vicki gasped.  
  
Stephanie moved her hand and gently patted her stomach. "Oh we are just
getting started, we are not even close to being done," she said softly. "Now
just lay back and enjoy."  
  
Stephanie stood up and unfastened her dress letting it fall to the floor. She
had not bothered with a bra or panties and Vicki took in all of her beauty.
Stephanie smiled as she looked at Vicki and saw the appreciation of her body
in her face. Stephanie sank back to her knees, spread Vicki's pussy and went
back to work on her. She started making slow circles with her tongue just
under Vicki's clit. Stephanie then coaxed Vicki to spread her lips of her
pussy as she had done before and as she did her clit peeked out of its
protective hood. Stephanie slowly drew circles around Vicki's over sensitive
clit with the tip of her tongue bringing it to attention. Stephanie flicked
her tongue across Vicki's clit teasing her by not quite taking it in her
mouth. Stephanie could tell from the reaction of Vicki's body that she wanted
more then just the tip of her tongue.  
  
"You want more don't you Vicki? I can see by the way your body moves that you
want more," Stephanie teased her.  
  
"Yes I do, please more, give me more," Vicki pleaded as she was now at
Stephanie's mercy.  
  
Stephanie slowly took her hand and stuck her finger inside Vicki's sopping wet
pussy. Stephanie slowly worked it in and out finger fucking her and then she
added a second and then a third finger to her new recruit’s cunt. Vicki's hips
bucked up against Stephanie's hand as if she were trying to get the entire
hand in her pussy. Stephanie wrapped her lips around Vicki's clit and gently
bit the nub as she continued to finger fuck her. Stephanie felt Vicki's body
quiver and her pace quicken against the intruding fingers. Stephanie flattened
her tongue and increased its pace on her neighbor's clit causing Vicki to
start moaning again and lifting her hips off the couch. Stephanie took this
opportunity to seek out Vicki's asshole. She got one finger soaked with
Vicki's cunt juice and teased her anal opening. Stephanie continued to add
more and more of Vicki's natural lube to her ass and then pushed in her finger
a little deeper each time. Soon Stephanie had her middle finger buried all the
way in Vicki's asshole and she finger fucked both the woman's ass and pussy
together.  
  
Stephanie then located Vicki's g-spot as she found the spongy area and ran her
fingertip over the sensitive ridges. With a slight pressure Stephanie rubbed
in a circular motion while she increased the action on Vicki's clit. Stephanie
alternated between using the flat part of her tongue and the tip of her tongue
on Vicki's clit as she also increased the pressure and speed on her g-spot.
This action combined with the finger fucking of her ass sent Vicki over the
edge.  
  
Vicki could not take anymore and she sensed an orgasm like no other in her
life. Vicki felt an uncontrollable weird feeling that started in her groin and
spread rapidly down her legs. She lifted her hips higher off the floor giving
Stephanie more access to the spot inside almost as if she were trying to get
Stephanie's entire body into her own body. Vicki felt her legs go rigid and
her hands tightened as she grasped the air. Vicki was paralyzed, her body was
not her own and she felt the crescendo building but not letting up either.
Vicki felt Stephanie increase the pressure on her clit and that did it. Vicki
screamed as her body convulsed uncontrollably. She clamped her thighs together
and grabbed the back of Stephanie's head as she had orgasm after orgasm.
Stephanie did not let go of Vicki's clit and kept her finger buried in Vicki's
asshole.  
  
"Enough, please enough, I can't take any more," she pleaded with Stephanie.  
  
But Stephanie did not stop instead she increased the pressure and speed on her
clit one more time and rotated her finger around in Vicki's rectum. Vicki felt
lightheaded and thought she might pass out. Stephanie popped her finger out of
Vicki's ass and sucked hard on her clit one final time. Vicki grabbed onto
Stephanie's head and lifted her hips off the couch in a mind numbing,
shattering orgasm. Vicki went rigid and Stephanie thought that she had passed
out but Vicki lay still and just let the intensity leave her body as best she
could. Stephanie released Vicki's clit and moved up along side her. She smiled
at her and gently kissed her, letting Vicki taste her own juices.  
  
"My God I thought that I was going to die," Vicki said still out of breath,
"What did you ever do to me?"  
  
Stephanie laughed and kissed her again. "Do I really need to explain?"  
  
Vicki sighed and licked her lips as she tasted herself for the first time.
Vicki wondered what Stephanie tasted like, would she taste the same? Vicki
liked the musky smell and somewhat sweet taste of her own pussy and she made
up her mind then that she would find out how Stephanie tasted. Vicki's ass was
on fire as it was the first time anything had been in her ass. Vicki learned
that her ass was extremely sensitive and she enjoyed anal penetration.  
  
"What are you thinking?" She heard Stephanie ask.  
  
"I was just thinking that it was the first time anything has been in my ass.
Your finger stirred up some sensations," Vicki admitted.  
  
"You did seem to like it and I always love to be finger fucked in the ass when
someone is eating my pussy," Stephanie told her, then asked, "Anything else?"  
  
"I was just thinking if you tasted the same and what it would be like to find
out," Vicki said somewhat shyly almost embarrassed.  
  
Stephanie answered her rather coyly, "Well, why not find out for yourself?"  
  
Vicki didn't respond and just stared down at the floor.  
  
"What's wrong," Stephanie said. "Did I say something wrong? Did I offend you?"  
  
"No, no, not at all. It's just that I have never been with a woman until now
and I'm afraid that I may disappoint you," Vicki confessed.  
  
"Vicki it wasn't that long ago that I felt the same way. I still remember my
first time. I just tried to copy what she did to me but more important was to
do what I wanted to do and what I liked," Stephanie said trying to comfort
her.  
  
Stephanie went on, "I have thought about being with you since we first met but
if you are uncomfortable with it, I understand."  
  
Vicki looked into Stephanie's understanding eyes and she immediately felt
relieved. Vicki now had the same desire for Stephanie. Then she asked shyly,
"Where, how do I start?"  
  
Stephanie answered her with a smile, "Start wherever and however you want and
then just follow your instincts."  
  
Vicki nervously moved over and kissed Stephanie. She thrust her tongue between
her lips and started exploring the inside of Stephanie's mouth tentatively
just as Stephanie had done to her. She felt Stephanie kiss her back and then
she started to relax a little. Vicki moved her hand to Stephanie's breast and
started playing with her nipple, gently squeezing it, amazed at how instantly
hard it got. She lowered her head and flicked her tongue over the nipple,
hearing Stephanie moan aloud. Vicki liked bringing pleasure to her and she was
encouraged by Stephanie's submission. Vicki alternated between each breast,
gently nibbling and flicking her tongue over Stephanie's nipples. She broke
away and put her hands on Stephanie's breasts, she loved the feeling of the
firm mounds. Vicki could feel her own juices start to heat up again.  
  
They moved to the floor and Vicki sat on Stephanie's stomach and Stephanie
felt Vicki's wetness leak over her. Vicki caressed both of Stephanie's breasts
and stared at them fascinated with their firmness and eraser hard nipples.
After a few minutes, Vicki worked her way down Stephanie's stomach and knelt
between her legs. She ran her tongue over Stephanie's stomach and teased her
just above her pubic line. Stephanie moaned again and brought her hand down to
caress Vicki's face and silky hair.  
  
Vicki's confidence continued to grow and she moved down to Stephanie's inner
thighs. Vicki ran her tongue up and down between her neighbor's thighs. She
remembered what it felt like when Stephanie had done it to her and she tried
to duplicate every move. As she ran her tongue up the inside of Stephanie's
thighs she stopped to look at her pussy. Vicki had never been face to face
with another woman like this. She studied the way the Stephanie's pussy lips
puffed out with desire. She saw Stephanie's wetness glistening on her neatly
trimmed tuft of pubic hair.  
  
Vicki tentatively took her finger and ran it along the crack of Stephanie's
pussy, feeling for the first time another woman's wetness and warmth. Vicki
took a deep breath and smelled the muskiness of sex that filled the room.
Vicki was enamored with the slickness of Stephanie's wetness and she found it
exciting. Vicki then took both hands and spread Stephanie's pussy lips apart,
exploring her further and studying her pussy. Vicki was surprised by the size
of Stephanie's clit as it poked out of the hood that covered it. Vicki saw how
it tried to escape out from under the hood so she peeled the hood away freeing
the engorged clit. Stephanie's clit looked like a little cock and it amazed
Vicki that something so small could bring a woman so much pleasure. She ran
her finger over Stephanie's clit and felt her body jump almost involuntarily.
Vicki then ran her finger down to Stephanie's vagina and gently slipped her
forefinger in the juicy hole.  
  
Vicki was amazed at how Stephanie's vagina felt to her. Even though she had
masturbated she really was not sure what to expect fingering another woman's
pussy. Vicki liked the way Stephanie's pussy closed around her finger. Vicki
flinched in surprise when Stephanie’s muscles unexpectedly tightened around
her finger.  
  
Vicki looked at Stephanie smiled and then started moving her finger in and out
very slowly finger fucking her just as Stephanie had done earlier. Vicki
wanted to see if she could make Stephanie cum with her finger. As she
continued to finger fuck her, Stephanie started to move her hips up to meet
each one of Vicki's strokes. Vicki heard her moan and watched Stephanie's face
as she quickened her strokes. Stephanie was close to an orgasm and Vicki
increased her speed as the pussy muscles continually tightened around Vicki's
finger.  

"Keep going, faster. I need to cum," Stephanie said in desperate desire.  
  
Vicki slowed briefly and gently slipped in her middle finger along side with
her forefinger and then increased her speed again. She watched as Stephanie
arched her back, tilted her head back, closed her eyes and bucked her hips
faster and faster.  
  
"Please, I am almost there. Just a little more, oh God here it comes. I'm
cumming!" Stephanie cried out in ecstasy  
  
Vicki watched excitedly as Stephanie fucked her fingers. She felt Stephanie's
muscles contract over and over in spasm as her legs went rigid and her orgasm
exploded on Vicki's hand. Stephanie squirted her juice all over Vicki's hand
and her own thighs. Vicki was taken back by Stephanie's orgasm she had never
known that a woman could ejaculate like a man. Vicki removed her fingers and
brought them to her lips and seductively licked off Stephanie's wetness with
her tongue. Vicki couldn't wait until Stephanie would shoot the tasty juice
into her mouth.  
  
Vicki went down between Stephanie's legs and spread her pussy with her fingers
then she tentatively stuck her tongue out and touched Stephanie's erect hard
clit. She felt Stephanie jump and she was pleased that she found the right way
to bring Stephanie so much pleasure. Vicki moved her thumb over her seducer's
clit and gently pulled it further exposing the nub from its protective hood.
Vicki tried to simulate what Stephanie had done with her tongue so she could
pleasure her in the same way. Vicki flattened her tongue and drew circles very
slowly around Stephanie's clit. When she felt Stephanie shudder, Vicki became
very pleased with herself.  
  
As Stephanie's body shuddered she screamed, "Oh God."  
  
Vicki knew this was a good sign and she continued with what she was doing. She
pointed her tongue and flicked it over Stephanie's clit. Vicki felt her
Stepanie’s body stiffen as she covered the nub with her mouth and gently
grabbed it with her teeth. She gently nipped and sucked on it, then rolled the
nub around with her tongue driving Stephanie insane with desire  
  
Stephanie was very close to the edge and Vicki had learned very quickly what
to do this time. Stephanie had been dreaming of this moment since she first
met Vicki. Suddenly, Stephanie felt that familiar twinge in her groin and she
quickly grabbed onto Vicki's head. Vicki increased the speed of her tongue on
Stephanie's clit causing her to jump and stiffen again as her orgasm built
within her body. Stephanie's breath became ragged and she screamed out for
Vicki to hold her tight. Vicki remembered that Stephanie had not let go of her
when they reached this stage so she stayed with her neighbor's clit and moved
her hands to Stephanie's ass, squeezing the firm shapely cheeks. This brought
Stephanie over the edge.  
  
Stephanie's legs stiffened, her stomach tightened and her eyes rolled back.
Stephanie shot stream after stream of juice into Vicki's mouth and although
Vicki was surprised by the amount and the force of Stephanie's orgasm she
stayed glued to her lover’s pussy. Vicki continued to ride the orgasm for
another minute or so before Stephanie begged her to stop. But Vicki did not
stop but instead she attacked Stephanie's clit with even more voracity.  
  
Stephanie started to protest but the words never escaped her mouth as they
were cut short by another mind blowing orgasm. Even more juice sprayed Vicki's
face surprising both women with the amount and intensity or Stephanie's
release. Vicki finally released her friend's clit and looked at it swollen and
throbbing. Vicki moved up along side of Stephanie her face drenched with
Stephanie's juices. Vicki laid her head on Stephanie's breasts and played with
her glistening pubic hair. Stephanie had just had one of the most intense and
satisfying orgasms of her life and she lay there and stroked the hair of her
new found lover.  
  
"So how did I do for my first time?" Vicki asked already knowing the answer
and feeling very pleased with her performance.  
  
"Well you would have a very difficult time convincing anyone else that it was
your first time with another woman," Stephanie replied, and then she said,
"Come let's go up to my bedroom. You will be staying the night of course and I
have so many other things to show you and teach you."  
  
“I really should get home my daughter Trudy is alone by herself,” Vicki said
sounding disappointed.  
  
“Nonsense I will have Gretchen and Erica go over and stay with her tonight.
Why don’t you call her and I will tell the girls,” Stephanie told her.  
  
Stephanie left the room and Vicki was surprised that she didn’t bother with
any clothes. Vicki called Trudy and told her that she had drunk too much wine
and would not be able to drive so she would be staying at Stephanie’s house
for the night. She told her that Stephanie’s daughters would be coming over to
stay with her and keep her company. Trudy was abrupt and agreed to everything
quickly as she was anxious to get back to the lesbian video; it was so hot and
Trudy didn’t know that women did those things to each other. Stephanie reached
the girl’s room and found her twin daughter’s naked together in bed.  
  
“Did you enjoy the show?” Stephanie asked.  
  
“Oh yes mother it was so hot watching you seduce her?” Erica replied.  
  
“Do we get to do her too?” Gretchen asked.  
  
“No not this time but I have a favor to ask. Would you two go over and keep
Trudy company for the night? Vicki will be staying with me,” Stephanie
requested.  
  
“Of course mother we would be happy to. Trudy is hot is it okay of we seduce
her?” Erica asked.  
  
“You two are on your own and if you can seduce her go for it,” Stephanie
smiled.  
  
Gretchen and Erica put on the same clothes they had on earlier and left their
rooms. Stephanie had returned to Vicki and both women were still naked when
the twins came in to say good night to their mother and Vicki. Vicki was
embarrassed at first with her nudity and the obvious situation when the girls
entered the room but they were so casual about it she was quickly at ease. The
girls kissed their mother on both cheeks and then surprised the naked Vicki by
kissing her also in the European tradition. Vicki watched as the shapely twins
headed out their house on the way over to her home to stay with her daughter.
Vicki then followed Stephanie up to the bedroom. As she walked behind
Stephanie and admired the woman's shapely figure, Vicki felt her pussy tingle
in anticipation of a very sexual night ahead.  
  
CAROL VISITS JANET AND MEETS MARIA  
  
Carol arrived at Janet’s home in anticipation of more fantastic sex. She
couldn’t get Janet and the things they had done out of her mind. As she drove
over to Janet’s house Carol could not resist the temptation to rub her pussy
through her shorts. At one of the longer traffic lights she even ran her
finger under her shorts and panties and fingered herself. Her pussy was
already leaking when she finally arrived at Janet’s place. Carol was surprised
to see Maria there and at first she was a little disappointed since we had
wanted to jump right in bed with Janet.  
  
Janet introduced Maria and Carol to each other and then asked Carol to join
them in a glass of wine. Janet and Maria told Carol about their soccer plans
and how Stephanie was recruiting Moms to help out. Janet convinced Carol to
join the soccer Mom group even though her daughter Marcia was a cheerleader.
Janet poured more wine and they tipped glasses toasting each other. There was
more light conversation as they finished the wine and Carol felt light headed
from having drunk too much. She leaned back against the sofa and sighed
closing her eyes.  
  
The next thing Carol felt were Maria and Janet kissing her on the side of her
face. They ran their lips up and down the side of Carol’s face and tongued her
ears emitting a groan from her. Carol felt their hands move under her shirt
and cup her bare breasts and tweak her erect nipples. Carol felt herself
losing it once again gave in to her insatiable desires. Janet kissed Carol
full on the lips and shoved her tongue into Carol’s mouth searching for her
tongue. Carol opened her mouth willingly and their tongues danced with each
other as Maria moved her mouth down to Carol’s breasts.  
  
Maria then kissed Carol as Janet had and Janet sucked on Carol’s tits and
nipples. Carol was moaning and groaning and her hips began to undulate of
their own free will. Maria lifted Carol’s shirt over her head baring her upper
body and then returned to sucking on one of Carol’s tits as Janet sucked on
the other. Carol’s body was gyrating of its own accord.  
  
"Doesn't she have just the greatest nubs," said Janet referring to Carol’s now
eraser hard nipples, "You want us to love you don't you Carol? I can see by
the way your body moves that you want more. Do you?"  
  
Excited beyond her control Carol just nodded her head. Maria kissed her again
plunging her tongue into Carol’s mouth as Janet unfastened my shorts and once
again within 24 hours she tugged them down over Carol’s hips. Next Janet
pulled Carol’s panties down and off her legs and Carol’s legs opened
automatically in anticipation of her Janet’s next move.  
  
"Would you like to go first," Janet asked Maria.  
  
"I would love to," Maria said excitedly.  
  
Janet and Maria quickly removed their clothes so that the three of them were
totally naked. Carol was overcome with Maria’s beautiful firm body seeing the
Spanish teacher naked for the first time. Maria then moved between Carol’s
legs and stroked and lightly probed her vulva. Carol was struggling to contain
her desire, and when she felt Maria tease her secret entrance she couldn't
stand it any longer. Carol pulled Maria to her and tried to get Maria to lick
her sopping wet pussy. But Maria was not concerned about Carol’s urgency and
continued at her own pace.  
  
Carol pushed herself onto Maria's face and she knew that this was what she
wanted. Carol needed this beautiful Spanish girl to lick at her sex, to
explore her with Maria’s tongue, her hidden crevices and taste her juices.
Maria movements were unsure at first, knowing only that she wanted to taste
Carol’s womanhood. Maria knew Carol was encouraged by her murmurs of pleasure
that her actions caused. Janet moved to Carol’s side and stroked her breasts
as she watched Maria between her legs.  
  
Maria had an overwhelming desire to touch and feel Carol and she brought her
hands up to caress Carol’s buttocks. She kneaded gently at Carol’s smooth
flesh, spreading her cheeks until Carol knew Maria could see the deep shadowed
cleft between them, and her puckered amber ring that nestled there. Maria
startled Carol when she reached for it with her tongue, licking, and running
the tip of her tongue around it, feeling Carol’s tight muscles react to her
probing tongue.  
  
Carol whispered encouragement to her, "Oh yes, oh Maria please don't stop."  
  
Carol felt her tight ring dilate from the pressure of Maria’s tongue. This
felt so good. Maria then pushed a finger into Carol’s pussy and she felt it
delve deeply into her warmth causing her vaginal muscles to contract
involuntarily.  
  
"Put your finger in me," Carol begged and Maria knew exactly what to do.  
  
She moistened her finger with Carol’s cunt juices and she pushed it into her
tight rosebud, slowly easing her way in. Maria’s tongue continued to lick and
tease Carol’s sex now slipping over her moistened lips and stopping at her
tight pleasure nub. Carol pushed herself against Maria, grinding her hips so
as to force Maria's finger further and deeper into her anal channel. Carol
could no longer concentrate on anything apart from the feel of Maria's hands
caressing her ass as the finger penetrated her private entrance while Maria’s
mouth nibbled frantically on her clit. Carol knew she was about to cum and she
knew that would as good as ever. That special feeling rose over Carol and she
buried her face in Janet's body, their breasts pressed together as she tried
to hide her cries of ecstasy. Carol felt her juices flow, her pussy swell and
she squirted streams of cum into Maria's mouth. At first Maria was startled
when the first squirt shot into her mouth but then she licked and swallowed,
drinking the streams of cum with her own sounds of pleasure.  
  
For a moment they stayed glued to one another, too weak to move. Then very
slowly, Maria eased her finger from Carol’s rectum and laid her head on
Carol’s thighs with her arms entwined around Carol’s legs. This was only the
start of their explorations and now Carol would take her.  
  
"You are very accomplished Maria," Carol gasped.  
  
"Yes, I had a very good teacher," Maria replied.  
  
"You must have," Carol agreed.  
  
"Carol your pussy gets so swollen when you are excited and when you cum it
squirts out like you are peeing," Maria commented.  
  
"Yes that happens sometimes when I am very excited. Now let's see if I can get
you to squirt for me," Carol answered.  
  
Maria and Carol switched places so that she was now seated on the sofa and
Carol was between her legs. Carol gently pushed Maria's legs wider apart and
she watched as the outer lips of Maria’s sex spread and the pink inner
surfaces were revealed to her. They were already glistening with juices and
Carol knew at that instant how Janet must have felt when she and Maria made
love. Carol couldn't wait to taste her juices for myself. The opening of
Maria's vagina was a dark and mysterious shadow and felt like velvet.  
  
Carol slowly reached forward and spread Maria's labia wider allowing her
fingers to play up and down the moist slit. carol felt Maria quiver, little
goose bumps from her shivers of sensation ran down her thighs. Stretching her
wider Carol could see a firm nub of erect pink flesh standing proudly like a
tiny cock at the top of Maria's sex. Carol knew that this was her seat of
pleasure and the cause of all of her urges. Carol let her fingers tickle
Maria’s clit lightly, teasingly causing the teacher to gasp as her thighs
jerked in sudden tremor. Carol lowered head and took the nub of tissue in her
mouth, rolling it lightly between her lips and scraping it gently with her
teeth. Carol could smell her arousal. Maria smelled so much like Janet, her
deep musk made Carol light-headed and she wondered if this is what all Spanish
pussy smelled like. Carol tongued and licked gently up and down the length of
Maria's slit and she had to hold her thighs apart as Maria began to buck
beneath her. Carol knew that Maria was reaching her crisis as she moaned,
almost growling with meaningless sounds of ecstasy arising from her. Carol
slowed her assault as she wanted to extend her pleasure as long as she could.
Carol fingered Maria's sex again, ran her fingertips up and down Maria’s sex
and scratched lightly at her labia.  
  
With a fingertip Carol probed the entrance to Maria's vagina. she knew that
she wasn't the first to tread this path but that she must still go gently.
Maria's cry of pleasure at being penetrated encouraged Carol to thrust her
finger in her deeper and faster. Carol could feel the muscular walls of
Maria’s tight pussy grip at her as she caressed the folds and crevices inside
Maria’s pussy. Carol slid her middle finger in alongside the first finger and
allowed her thumb to rest lightly on Maria's clit. Janet lay along side Maria
and stroked her firm pert breasts and tweaked her rock hard nipples as Carol
worked her pussy.  
  
Maria's pussy seemed to suck at Carol’s fingers drawing them in deeper and
faster until her fingertips seemed to make contact with Maria's womb. Both of
them were panting so Carol began to rub Maria’s clit frantically. Carol knew
that Maria was about to cum. She watched Maria arch her back and Carol felt
Maria’s muscles contract down around her fingers. Carol pulled her fingers
from Maria’s cunt and covered it with her mouth once again sucking hard on her
clit. Janet covered Maria's mouth with her own and smothered her cries of
ecstasy as she writhed on the sofa with her head moving from side to side as
the waves of sensation rolled over her. Maria came in buckets drenching
Carol’s face with her juices.  
  
Janet left the sofa allowing Maria a few moments to recover and allowing me to
suck up all her delightful juices. I felt my own loins stir again in the
passion of the moment. Janet returned to my side wearing her strap-on cock and
with a sexy sultry smile spoke to me.  
  
"Carol I think it time to return to my bedroom," Janet said as she turned and
walked toward her bedroom.  
  
Carol got up off my knees from between Maria's legs and followed Janet into
the bedroom. Carol’s eyes were fixed on Janet’s curvy ass as she walked behind
her leaving Maria on the sofa. Janet lay on her back on her bed with her fake
cock sticking straight up in the air. The sight was overwhelmingly erotic.  
  
Carol was fixated on Janet now and she moved my legs astride her lap. Carol
straddled her now and stared deeply into Janet’s eyes as she lowered herself
back onto the rubber cock. Waves of pleasure washed through Carol again as she
slowly fucked Janet's thick rubber strap-on. Carol ground down onto the cock,
enjoying every little rib and notch on it, letting it stretch her pussy
satisfyingly. Carol moaned loudly enough for Maria to hear her in the other
room as she reveled in the sensations of her cunt. Janet and Carol kissed each
other again hungrily.  
  
Suddenly the focus of Carol’s attention switched, as she become aware of Maria
behind her. Carol turned her head to the side and started kissing Maria’s
mouth wantonly. Maria licked and nibbled Carol’s lips before once again
forcing her tongue deep into Carol’s mouth. Maria’s tongue was thick and long
as it frantically invaded Carol’s mouth. It felt as if she was fucking her
with it and Carol sucked on it much like she would a man's cock. Their tongues
interlocked as Maria swirled her tongue round Carol’s mouth. Maria pressed her
body against Carol and she felt Maria’s firm breasts pressed into her back.
Maria reached around Carol and started to fondle her tits. She rolled Carol’s
swollen nipples gently between her delicate fingers. As Maria fondled Carol’s
breasts she returned her attention to Janet and kissed her hungrily as she
thrust down on Janet’s thick strap-on, their tongues explored each other's
mouths again.  
  
Carol gasped in excitement as she suddenly felt the cool latex of another
strap-on pressed against my back. Maria must have put one on while she was
occupied with Janet. As Carol fucked Janet's strap-on she wiggled her ass
shamelessly inviting Maria to give cock to her too. As she pulled on Carol’s
nipples Maria whispered in her ear that she was going to fuck her hot little
ass.  
  
Carol heard Maria spit noisily and felt a blob of Maria’s sticky saliva fall
between her ass cheeks. Carol’s ass was still tender from Janet's earlier
ministrations and the saliva was soothing as it slid into her still slightly
tender asshole. Soon Carol felt the head of Maria's rubber cock pressed
against the opening of her tight ass. The head of the cock felt nice and slick
with lube and it slid easily into Carol’s stretched opening and with another
push it was past her sphincter and rushed deep into her ass. With the strap-on
in her ass and Janet's rubber cock still in her pussy Carol began to revel in
the pleasure of her first experience of being double fucked by two rubber
cocks. Carol could feel the two cocks stretching her inside, almost rubbing
against each other, separated only by a thin membrane of her skin.  
  
Maria obviously loved the sensation of screwing Carol’s ass. Carol wiggled it
provocatively as Maria thrust into her and then she playfully slapped the
cheeks of Carol’s ass. Maria’s smacks were firm and thrilling and Carol felt
her ass cheeks begin to tingle as the hand struck her again and again. Carol
moaned deeply now with each thrust of the two fake cocks and her cries filled
the room. Maria and Janet were fucking her roughly as if they were rushing
toward their own orgasms. At this moment Carol wished that there was a pussy
available for her mouth to join the luscious rubber cocks in my ass and my
pussy.  

The three of them came at the same time writhing and screaming. Carol leaned
forward on Janet's body and thrust her tongue into Carol’s receptive mouth and
Maria kissed the back of her neck still kneading Carol’s breasts. They had to
be one of the hottest sights ever as the three women were connected together
with rubber cocks.  
  
Janet was next double fucked by Maria and Carol and then it was Maria's turn
to be sandwiched between Janet and Carol with fake cocks in her ass and pussy.
They fucked and sucked each other until they were totally drained and well
into the night. As the three women lay there Carol couldn't help but reflect
on the past two days with Janet and then Maria. Not in her wildest imagination
would she have thought that she would have sex with two women and allow
herself to be double fucked with fake cocks. But she loved every erotic minute
of their time together and she loved everything they did already looking
forward to an encore.  
  
The three women fell asleep in each other’s arms totally relaxed and sated.
Tomorrow morning they would wake up and enjoy each other once again before
Carol and Maria left Janet’s home.  
  
SHOULD THERE BE A CHAPTER TWO?  
  
Let me know if this story should continue. If there is sufficient interest I
will write the next chapter. Planned for the next chapter is to wrap up the
weekend. Gretchen, Erica and Trudy hit it off Saturday night. Janet, Carol and
Maria will have some more fun Sunday morning. Stephanie and Vicki will enjoy
each other in the morning. Shirley’s barriers will weaken further when Maria
shop in the boutique. Anna and Lauren will spend Sunday afternoon together.
Mothers and daughters will learn more about each other’s activities. The
soccer team and Mom's group will be formed and preparation for the first game
will take a unique twist.




        Lesbian Soccer Moms Ch. 02


_The response to this story was overwhelming and almost everyone who commented
or sent feedback encouraged me to write the next chapter. For those of you who
were offended by this story please remember that it is fiction. For those of
you, who liked the story, enjoy Chapter 2. I have taken into account some of
your suggestions about story line, chapter length and organization. I will try
to incorporate those suggestions into the story. In this chapter we will wrap
up the weekend and head into the soccer season._  
  
TRUDY HAS UNEXPECTED FUN WITH THE TWINS  
  
Trudy was actually put out when her mother called and told her that she would
not be home but that the twins Gretchen and Erica would be coming over to stay
with her. Trudy would have preferred to be alone that night as she was really
into the lesbian video. Trudy had never seen such explicit sex acts before and
the movie really turned her on. She would have been very content to watch the
movie and play with her pussy but now she had to accommodate her classmates.
Trudy heard the doorbell ring and she quickly turned off the TV and hid the
video. She put her sleep bottoms back on and went to answer the door.  
  
Gretchen and Erica had packed their overnight bags and threw in a couple of
toys just in case things got interesting with Trudy. The twins had full
intentions of seducing Trudy if they could but they had agreed not to push the
issue if she panicked. Trudy opened the front door, greeted them and let them
in the house. Trudy showed the girls the guest room where they would be
staying. Gretchen suggested that she and her sister change into their
sleepwear since Trudy already had hers on. They quickly changed in the guest
room and then returned to the family room.  
  
Gretchen had brought a bottle of wine with her so Trudy got the glasses and
the three of them sat together in the family room sipping wine and talking.
Trudy liked the two girls and found herself very relaxed in their company. As
the evening went on Trudy got another bottle of wine and they continued
chatting and drinking. Gretchen and Erica tactfully steered the conversation
toward sex and the three of them told stories and giggled. Trudy looked over
and noticed that Erica was rubbing her pussy. She had her sleepwear bottoms
pulled to the side and she was running her finger over her vulva.  
  
"Erica what are you doing?" gasped Trudy.  
  
"I'm rubbing my pussy silly. All this talk about sex has gotten me horny,"
Erica replied as she worked her fingers into her wet snatch.  
  
"Don't you rub yourself when you get horny?" Gretchen asked Trudy.  
  
"No, well sometimes but only when I am alone," Trudy shyly admitted.  
  
"It's more fun when it's with more people. Gretchen and I do it together all
the time. Show her Gretchen," Erica said.  
  
Before Trudy could protest further Gretchen had pulled her bottoms to the side
and began fingering her cute blonde pussy. Trudy sat there in shock as the two
girls openly masturbated in front of her. Trudy felt her own pussy heat up and
her thoughts briefly returned to the lesbian movie she had been watching. She
then pictured Gretchen and Erica as the two blondes in the movie and she
wondered if the twins did those things to each other.  
  
"Come on Trudy join us you know that you want to. I can already see a wet spot
in your bottoms," Erica encouraged her classmate.  
  
Trudy looked at her pajama bottoms and indeed there was a wet spot in her
crotch. Trudy turned beet red with embarrassment. Trudy hesitated a little too
long which caused Gretchen to move over to the sofa and sit next to her.
Gretchen smiled at the weary teenager and placed her hand on Trudy's hand.  
  
"Here I'll show you," Gretchen said as she moved Trudy's hand toward her panty
covered pussy.  
  
Gretchen then used her other hand to pull Trudy's panty to the side baring the
brunette's pubic area with its little tuft of brown hair. Trudy as if in a
trance allowed her hand to be moved to her vulva and she gasped audibly when
her hand touched her mound. Trudy's hand was frozen to the spot and she did
not move it as she instead tried to cover her bared pussy.  
  
"Don't be so shy. Here I'll do it for you," Gretchen said as she removed
Trudy's hand and covered the bared pussy with her own.  
  
Trudy gasped, "Please don't," but she was beyond any point of return.  
  
Gretchen began to stroke Trudy's outer pussy lips eventually separating them
and working her fingers into the girl's wet pussy and penetrating her inner
lips as well. Trudy gasped loudly as Gretchen's fingers slid deep into her
pussy. Gretchen then located the brunette's clit and Trudy's body jumped when
Gretchen thumbed the hard little pearl.  
  
"Oh God, oh, oh, please Gretchen we shouldn't be doing this," Trudy said but
as she did she looked right at Gretchen's exposed blonde pussy.  
  
"Would you like to touch me too? I know you would I can see it in your eyes,"
Gretchen said seductively.  
  
Gretchen then took Trudy's hand and placed it on her pussy. She encouraged
Trudy to do the same things to her that she was doing to Trudy. Trudy allowed
her hand to massage the warm wet pussy of her classmate and then she stuck her
fingers in Gretchen's vagina.  
  
"Ah that's it Trudy, just do what feels good, what feels natural," Gretchen
coached her.  
  
Trudy was overcome with lust and she felt she was very close to an orgasm. She
was surprised when Erica moved over and knelt between her legs. Erica hooked
her fingers in the waistband of Trudy's bottoms and slowly pulled them down
her hips and legs. Erica removed the panty and pushed Trudy's legs apart and
stared right at the girl's quim. Trudy didn't know what Erica was going to do
but she wondered if she was gong to put her mouth on her pussy just as she had
seen in the video. Erica licked Trudy's inner thighs and worked her tongue
toward the forbidden fruit. Trudy sighed, moaned and groaned as Erica closed
in on her treasure. When Erica's tongue finally touched her clit Trudy almost
came on the spot. Trudy's body leaped with excitement as her pussy gushed
forth with a mild orgasm. Erica then fastened her mouth to Trudy's pussy and
devoured her clit as she drove her toward a mind blowing orgasm.  
  
Gretchen pulled Trudy's sleep top off her body and exposed her medium sized
firm tits. Trudy was way beyond protesting anything at this point and she just
moaned loudly when Gretchen covered her tits with her mouth. Gretchen sucked
on Trudy's tits and nibbled on her hard nipples as her sister performed her
magic on Trudy's cunt. Trudy's fingers were involuntarily plunging in and out
of Gretchen's pussy. Trudy felt her orgasm approaching then her body stiffened
as she screamed with delight as wave after wave rocked her body. Trudy was
gyrating out of control as the massive orgasm took over her body. She had
never cum like this before and it was frightening to her as well as incredibly
erotic. Erica's mouth never left Trudy's bucking pussy as she gobbled up every
bit of female nectar that gushed into her mouth.  
  
Finally Trudy calmed as the storm left her body. Erica moved up along side her
and kissed her deeply plunging her tongue into Trudy's mouth. Trudy realized
that she could taste herself on Erica's lips and she returned the kiss and
searched out Erica's tongue with her own. Then Gretchen moved Trudy's hand up
to Trudy's mouth so that she could taste the fingers that had been in
Gretchen's pussy. Trudy noticed they tasted different but at the same time
similar. Trudy then threw her head back and collapsed on the sofa.  
  
The next thing she felt was Erica and Gretchen kissing her on the side of her
face. They ran their lips up and down the side of Trudy's face and tongued her
ears emitting a groan from her. Trudy felt their hands move and cup her bare
breasts and then tweak her erect nipples. Trudy then felt herself losing it
once again giving in to her new found insatiable desires. Gretchen kissed her
full on the lips and shoved her tongue into Trudy's mouth searching for
Trudy's tongue. Trudy opened her mouth willingly and the tongues danced with
each other as Erica moved her mouth down to Trudy's breasts.  
  
Erica then kissed Trudy as Gretchen had and then Gretchen sucked on Trudy's
tits and nipples. Trudy was moaning and groaning and her hips began to
undulate again of their own free will. Erica sucked on one of Trudy's tits as
Gretchen sucked on the other. Trudy's body was gyrating of its own accord.  
  
"Doesn't she have just the greatest nubs," said Gretchen referring to Trudy's
now eraser hard nipples, "You want us to love you some more don't you Trudy? I
can see by the way your body moves that you want more. Do you?"  
  
Excited beyond her control Trudy just nodded her head. Erica kissed Trudy
again plunging her tongue into her mouth. Gretchen stood up and removed her
sleepwear. Trudy saw the pretty blonde naked for the first time and then she
watched as Erica stood and removed her clothes. The two beautiful girls were
clearly twins and Trudy felt her body heat up just from looking at them.  
  
"Come Trudy let's go to your bedroom we have so much more to teach you,"
Gretchen said holding out her hand for Trudy.  
  
Trudy took the blonde's hand and she led the sisters to her bedroom. Erica
made a detour and picked up one of the overnight bags which included their sex
toys. Erica re-entered Trudy's room and dumped the bag on the bed. Trudy
stared in complete awe of the collection of dildos, beads, and toys. She had
never seen anything like them before.  
  
The twins had Trudy lay on her back on her own bed and Erica climbed up on her
and straddled her body. Gretchen took one of the strap-on dildos and put it
on. Trudy was fascinated as she watched Gretchen slip into the harness and
then attach the rubber cock to it. Gretchen looked bizarre with a cock but she
looked beautiful as well with her shapely figure. Erica moved toward Trudy's
face and began to lower her blond pussy toward Trudy's mouth.  
  
Trudy panicked and in a less than convincing protest said to Erica, "I have
never done that, please don't make me do it."  
  
"Don't be silly it's about time you learned to eat pussy. Just do what I did
to you," Erica directed.  
  
"Trudy if you are half as good eating pussy as you are at French kissing,
Erica is going to be very pleased," encouraged Gretchen.  
  
Trudy leaned forward and slowly stuck out her tongue. She wasn't sure exactly
how to do it so she just sort of pretended she was licking the ice cream off
of a cone. Trudy took one, slow lick as she flattened her tongue on Erica's
hot mound and it felt so smooth and warm. Trudy achieved the desired effect
and from the moan she knew that Erica enjoyed it. To Trudy's surprise she
enjoyed the taste of Erica and she kept licking and eating her. Trudy pointed
her tongue and burrowed into Erica's pussy. Trudy parted Erica's labia and her
tongue was rewarded with the exquisite taste of female nectar. Soon Trudy was
like a puppy at a saucer of milk, licking and lapping up as much as she could
as fast as she could.  
  
Erica was obviously enjoying what Trudy was doing and she reached down with
both hands and spread herself wide making it so much easier for Trudy's tongue
to explore her pussy. Trudy's tongue explored all of Erica and she took mental
notes of what seemed to turn Erica on. Erica was breathing rapidly and she
moaned softly whenever Trudy got near her hard pearl. As Trudy searched out
Erica's hard clit still just barely hidden in her tender hood Erica tensed and
began to quiver. After Trudy felt like she had teased Erica's opening as much
as she could with her tongue it was time to see Erica's reaction when Trudy's
tongue finally touched that pearl just as Erica had done to her earlier.  
  
As she worked on Erica's clit Gretchen got between Trudy's legs and lined the
large fake cock up with her pussy. Trudy had fucked a couple of times but she
had never taken a cock as large as the dildo and she was slightly
apprehensive. Gretchen was gentle however and eased the fake phallus into
Trudy's wet warm pussy. Trudy gasped aloud but her cries were muffled by
Erica's pussy. Gretchen started slowly moving her hips and then picked up the
pace as the back end of the dildo rubbed against her engorged clit. Trudy's
orgasm was building from the pounding of Gretchen's cock into her pussy. Like
an animal out of control Gretchen's hip movements continued to rapidly move
the fake rigid cock in and out of Trudy's wetness causing her to cry out again
into Erica's pussy. Trudy's legs spread further for Gretchen and the insistent
dildo with both their vigorous efforts to cum again. Trudy's scream was
muffled in Erica's pussy as another orgasm gushed forth from her. Gretchen
thrust her fake dick deeply into Trudy and her pussy pulsated in a long deep
climax as it filled Trudy's wet vagina with its thickness. Trudy's womb
flooded and co-mingled with Gretchen's female juices.  
  
As Trudy started to recover she turned her attention back to Erica. Trudy
burrowed her tongue as deep into Erica as she could and then she just sort of
licked and sucked her way up. When Trudy got to Erica's pearl she used the
very tip of her tongue to push back the little hood. Trudy was truly amazed at
the size of Erica's engorged clit. She flicked her tongue over it once and
then used the tip to explore the folds of flesh on either side of it. Erica
was now moaning and she used her fingers to pull her hood back as she arched
herself so that her pearl stuck out even further like a little cock. Trudy
nuzzled it with her nose taking in Erica's scent and she licked it once more
before she took it between my teeth and gently nibbled it.  
  
Erica went wild and started bucking and calling out Trudy's name. Erica let go
of her own fleshy hood and pulled Trudy's head to her pussy as she cried out
in ecstasy. Trudy sucked her clit as deep in her mouth as she could and Erica
humped her face for all she was worth. Trudy was excited that she was able to
get Erica that excited and she sucked harder and played with this wonderful
new toy with her lips, tongue and teeth. Trudy didn't know exactly how many
times Erica came but finally she rolled off of Trudy and collapsed on the bed,
her body in spasms.  
  
The three girls rested from their intense orgasms and cuddled together. Erica
and Gretchen caressed Trudy's body as Trudy thought about what she had just
done. Trudy loved every moment of her new experience and what she had done
with the twins was beyond her wildest imagination even beyond what she saw in
the video. Erica moved off the bed and then she donned the harness and snapped
in the dildo. Gretchen positioned her pussy over Trudy's mouth and Erica slid
the fake cock into Trudy's hot pussy. It was a repeat performance as the three
high school beauties brought pleasure to each other and experienced another
round of earth shaking climaxes. Later the three girls lay next to each other
totally drained and they eventually dozed off into a deep sleep.  
  
SUNDAY MORINING AND GLORIUS WAKEUP CALLS FOR ALL  
  
Marcia awoke from a wonderful dream. She was dreaming that someone was between
her legs licking her pussy. When she opened her eyes she was happy to see that
it was her new lover Lauren between her spread thighs. Lauren's wonderful
tongue was slipping up and down Marcia's wet pussy. Marcia started to moan
with desire as Lauren made passionate love to her.  
  
"I couldn't resist now just lay back and enjoy your wake up call," Lauren
whispered.  
  
Marcia reached down and stroked Lauren's soft lovely hair. She was still
confused but it felt so good that she allowed Lauren to continue. Lauren's
long brown hair concealed her face and Marcia moved it aside so she could
watch. Lauren's fingers moved to Marcia's pussy and spread her lips open.
Marcia cried out as Lauren touched her pussy with her spread tongue. Lauren
licked up and down slowly. Marcia had never felt anything like it and she
wondered for a moment why she had never imagined this before.  
  
A wonderful slippery tongue, slid up and down Marcia's spread pussy as Lauren
slid her tongue into her core. Marcia moaned aloud as Lauren's tongue slid in
and probed. Marcia wondered what her pussy juice tasted like to her as she had
tasted it experimentally many times. Lauren moved her fingers upward and
pulled outward and upward as her tongue flicked against Marcia's now exposed
clit causing her to cry out in passion. It sent a jolt of joy through Marcia's
whole body.  
  
What Lauren did to her for the next eternity was something Marcia never
dreamed could happen to her. Marcia's body exploded again and again. Lauren's
tongue flicked her clit and her lips sucked and pulled on the nubbin, sending
uncontrolled joy and passion through the teenager over and over. Marcia didn't
know how many times she came but she knew this weekend was an experience she
would never forget. Finally Marcia could stand it no more and pushed Lauren
away before she could start again. Marcia lay weak as a kitten and she
gradually fell back asleep only to be later awakened by Lauren's gentle
shaking.  
  
"Marcia you have to get up now. Anna will be here soon and I don't want her to
know about you, at least not today," Lauren told her.  
  
Marcia sat up and the two girls embraced and kissed briefly. Marcia then
headed to the shower. She then got dressed had a quick bite to eat and then
said goodbye to Lauren. The girls kissed deeply again and then Marcia left. As
Marcia headed home she reflected on the entire weekend with Lauren. She had
never been loved so passionately and she had never orgasmed with such
intensity as she had this past weekend. Marcia tried to picture the Amazon
Anna with the petite Lauren and pangs of jealousy ran through her body. Marcia
tried to put the image of Anna and Lauren out of her mind. As Marcia
reminisced about her weekend she had no idea that her mother had also come out
and that she had had her own remarkable lesbian experience.  
  
Marcia's mother Carol woke up between the two hot bodies of the soccer
coaches. She was suddenly aware of Janet again as she started to kiss down
Carol's neck and collarbone. Janet bit Carol gently as her mouth trailed hot
kisses down toward her breasts. Janet's mouth moved swiftly to Carol's
nipples, kissing them gently at first and then she grinned as they stiffened
to her touch. Next Janet took one nipple in her mouth and swirled her tongue
around it while she rolled the other nipple between her gentle fingers. Janet
sucked on it hard and Carol was amazed at how stiff it got under her touch and
gentle bites. Carol moaned noisily as Janet continued licking, sucking,
nibbling and pinching her swollen nipples. Janet started to rub her own clit
and then she stuck two fingers into her slippery pussy. Janet then took her
pussy moistened fingers and traced them along Carol's lips before she plunged
them into her mouth, making Carol taste the sticky sweetness.  
  
Janet's fake cock brushed against Carol's thigh and Carol then realized that
Janet had donned the strap-on again. Carol then turned to Janet and moved her
legs astride Janet's lap. Carol straddled her now and stared deeply into
Janet's eyes as she lowered herself onto the rubber cock. Waves of pleasure
washed through Carol as she slowly impaled herself onto Janet's thick rubber
strap-on. Grinding down onto cock Carol enjoyed every little rib and notch on
it as it stretched her pussy. Carol moaned deeply as she reveled in the
sensations in her cunt. She and Janet kissed each other again hungrily.  
  
Suddenly the focus of Carol's attention switched as she become aware of Maria
moving behind her. Maria turned Carol's head to the side and started kissing
her mouth wantonly. Maria licked and nibbled Carol's lips before she forced
her tongue deep into Carol's mouth. Maria's tongue was thick and long and
invaded Carol's mouth frantically as if Maria was fucking her with it. Their
tongues interlocked as Maria swirled her tongue round Carol's mouth. Maria
pressed her body against Carol and Carol felt Maria's firm round breasts press
into her back. Maria reached around Carol and started to fondle her breasts
and rolled her swollen nipples gently between her delicate fingers. As Maria
fondled her breasts Carol returned her attention to Janet and kissed her
hungrily as she thrust down on the thick strap-on. Their tongues explored each
other's mouths again.  

Carol gasped in excitement as she suddenly felt the cool latex of another
strap-on press against her back. As she fucked Janet's strap-on Carol wiggled
her slutty ass inviting Maria to fuck her too. As she pulled on Carol's
nipples Maria whispered to her that she was going to fuck her hot little ass.  
  
Carol heard Maria spit noisily and she felt a blob of sticky saliva fall
between her ass cheeks. Carol's ass was still tender from last night's
ministrations and the saliva was soothing as it slid into her still slightly
tender asshole. Next Carol felt the head of Maria's rubber cock press against
the opening of her tight ass. The head of the cock was nice and slick with
lube and it slid easily into Carol's stretched opening. Maria moved her hips
forward and with another push the dildo slipped past Carol's sphincter and
rushed deep into her ass. With Maria's strap-on in her ass and Janet's rubber
cock still in her pussy Carol reveled in the pleasure being double fucked by
two rubber cocks. She could feel the two cocks stretching her inside, almost
rubbing against each other, separated only by a thin membrane of skin.  
  
Maria obviously loved the sensation of screwing Carol's ass. Carol wiggled it
provocatively as Maria thrust into her. Maria caressed the smooth skin
buttocks with her hands causing goose bumps to appear on Carol's ass cheeks.
With both her orifices filled, waves of pleasure overtook Carol and her body
erupted with a continuous string of orgasms. Carol's body jerked
uncontrollably and as Maria and Janet fucked her like a rag doll causing her
to cum and cum over and over again.  
  
Maria and Janet switched places so that she was now on her back and Carol was
between her legs. Carol gently pushed Maria's legs wider apart and Carol
watched as the outer lips of Maria's sex spread and the pink inner surfaces
were revealed to her. They were already glistening with juices and Carol knew
at that instant how Janet must have felt when she and Maria made love. Carol
couldn't wait to taste her juices again. The opening of Maria's vagina was a
dark and mysterious shadow and felt like velvet.  
  
Carol slowly reached forward and spread Maria's labia wider allowing her
fingers to play up and down Maria's moist slit. She felt Maria quiver, little
goose bumps from her shivers of sensation ran down her thighs. Stretching her
wider Carol could see a firm nub of erect pink flesh standing proudly like a
tiny cock at the top of Maria's sex. Carol knew that this was Maria's seat of
pleasure and the cause of all of her urges. Carol let her fingers tickle
Maria's clit lightly, teasingly causing her to gasp as her thighs jerked in
sudden tremor. Carol lowered head and took the nub of tissue in her mouth,
rolling it lightly between her lips and scraping it gently with her teeth.
Carol could smell Maria's arousal. She smelled so much like Janet, her deep
musk made Carol light-headed and she wondered if this is what all pussy smelt
like. Carol tongued and licked gently up and down the length of Maria's slit
and Carol had to hold Maria's thighs apart as she began to buck beneath her.
Carol knew that Maria was reaching her crisis as she moaned, almost growling
with meaningless sounds of desire arising from her. Carol slowed her assault
as she wanted to extend Maria's pleasure as long as she could. Carol fingered
Maria's sex again, ran her fingertips up and down Maria's sex and scratched
lightly at her labia.  
  
With a fingertip Carol probed the entrance to Maria's ass. Carol knew that she
wasn't the first to tread this path but that she should still go gently.
Maria's cry of pleasure at being penetrated encouraged Carol to thrust her
finger in her deeper and faster. Carol could feel the muscular walls of her
tight rectum grip at her as she caressed the crevice inside Maria's asshole.
Carol slid her middle finger in alongside the first finger and allowed her
thumb to rest lightly on Maria's clit. Janet lay along side Maria and stroked
her firm big breasts and tweaked her rock hard nipples as Carol worked the
Spaniard's pussy.  
  
Janet then got behind Carol and began to caress Carol's lovely curvy ass.
Janet was enamored with Carol's shapely bottom and she planted light kisses on
Carol's ass cheeks. Carol cooed as Janet worked her ass as she continued to
drive Maria crazy. Janet began to finger Carol's asshole with first one then
two fingers. The fingers felt snug but both Janet and Carol knew that Carol's
ass was beginning to loosen up again. Janet removed her fingers and then she
placed something at the entrance to Carol's ass.  
  
"This will be a little bigger than the strap-on and it will stay in you easier
than a regular dildo," Janet cautioned Carol.  
  
Janet then inserted the head of an anal plug into Carol's ass. Once it cleared
Carol's sphincter it settled in her ass and Janet left it there. Janet then
put the strap-on dildo in Carol's pussy and began to fuck her again. Carol had
never been as full in her life as she did now with the two fake members in
her. Maria's pussy and ass seemed to suck at Carol's fingers drawing them in
deeper and faster until Carol's fingertips seemed to make contact with Maria's
womb. Both Maria and Carol were panting as Carol rubbed Maria's clit
frantically and Carol knew that Maria was about to cum. Janet watched Maria
arch her back and Carol felt her muscles contract down around her fingers.
Carol pulled her fingers from Maria's cunt and covered it with her mouth once
again sucking hard on Maria's clit. Maria cried out in ecstasy as she writhed
on the bed and her head moved from side to side as the waves of sensation
rolled over her. Maria came in buckets squirting and drenching Carol's face
with her juices.  
  
Maria groaned out loud and Carol cried out to Janet, "Let me turn over," Carol
pleaded.  
  
Carol rolled over onto her back and settled between Maria's legs. Janet pushed
the fake cock back into Carol's pussy as Maria reached around and cupped
Carol's breasts. As Maria caressed Carol's tits and tweaked hard nipples Janet
picked up the pace fucking Carol's pussy. Carol could feel the dildo in her
pussy rubbing against the butt plug in her ass and she reveled in being fucked
by two cocks at once. Carol was going wild and suddenly wished that she had
another cock or pussy in her mouth. She had never been so turned on as she was
at that moment.  
  
Carol could feel another orgasm building within her as Janet pounded her pussy
with her fake cock. Janet was panting as the nub on the dildo rubbed against
her clit and she too was close to cumming. The two beauties frantically humped
their bodies at each other and then they both exploded with an intense orgasm.
Janet collapsed on top of Carol and their breasts were crushed together. Maria
caressed the shoulders and hair of both young women as they slowly recovered
from their mind blowing orgasm. Janet reached under Carol and pulled the butt
plug out of Carol's ass. Carol's body jerked with another spasm as the plug
left her asshole with a loud pop.  
  
"Oh my God, you two are going to wear me out. I have never cum so much and so
often," Carol confessed and then she requested, "Can we rest awhile?"  
  
The three of them crashed on the bed and lay there for quite some time.
Eventually they showered, dressed and ate a light breakfast. Carol headed home
as she was a little concerned that her daughter Marcia may be worried about
her. Maria also went home since she wanted to change clothes before she went
shopping. Janet just threw on her sweats and kicked back in her family room
listening to music. Janet was thrilled with her recent discoveries and she
pondered on the upcoming soccer season. She thought to herself that it should
be quite a season and she wondered if there would be more discoveries ahead.  
  
Across town another couple was waking up and Vicki's back was pressed against
Stephanie's front. Vicki could feel the hard nipples of Stephanie's tits
pressing into her back. Vicki tried to get up with out disturbing Stephanie
but Stephanie stirred anyway.  
  
"I'm going to take a shower," Vicki whispered.  
  
"Mind if I join you?" Stephanie asked.  
  
"No of course not," Vicki replied.  
  
They entered the shower and relaxed under the warm cascade of water. Then they
began to wash each other's body. They were both getting turned on again as
they seemed to be insatiable. Stephanie pushed Vicki back against the shower
wall and smiled wickedly at her as Stephanie dropped slowly to her knees. As
Stephanie spread Vicki's legs she couldn't conceal a moan, and she had to bite
her lip to stifle her gasps as she felt Stephanie's hot breath on her pussy.
Stephanie started to place delicate kisses upon Vicki's naked thighs and the
sensation of her wet lips on Vicki's warm skin sent shockwaves of excitement
through her. Stephanie ran a fingertip down Vicki's slit and she groaned with
pleasure as Stephanie's fingers honed in on Vicki's now swollen clit.  
  
Stephanie inhaled the sweet odor of Vicki's pussy, savoring the musky smell
and her tongue darted out as she lapped excitedly at her pussy. Next she
pulled Vicki's pussy lips open to expose every fold of her pink pussy.
Stephanie darted her tongue in and out of Vicki's now dripping cunt as she
used her tongue like a little cock. Stephanie used her thumb to rub Vicki's
clit as she dipped her fingers into Vicki's soaking pussy, getting one of them
nice and wet and then slid it into Vicki's tight asshole. Stephanie started to
switch between sucking Vicki's clit into her hot mouth and sliding her fingers
into Vicki's hot pussy and one into her ass. Vicki groaned as she often did
with anal penetration. Vicki had never had anything in her ass but a finger
and she clearly enjoyed Stephanie's finger in her. Soon the intensity in
Vicki's ass, pussy and clit built up to a boiling point and she came noisily
her juices spilt from her and into Stephanie's awaiting mouth.  
  
Next Vicki turned Stephanie so that she was spread-eagled with her hands
against the wall of the shower and Vicki watched as the rivulets of water from
the shower coursed down her beautiful body and ran between her legs. Vicki
started to place gentle kisses all over Stephanie's body beginning at her
shoulders and kissed downward across her back to her curvy firm ass. Vicki
began to lick and kiss Stephanie's hips planting kisses all over her creamy
smooth sensitive skin. Vicki couldn't help herself from gently nibbling the
cheeky flesh of Stephanie's ass. Stephanie gave off a playful yelp and wiggled
her bottom in delight. As Vicki kissed the inside of Stephanie's thighs she
heard her groan with passion as Vicki's mouth moved steadily up her thighs
toward her pussy.  
  
Vicki loved the smell of Stephanie's pussy and she was desperate to taste her
again. Vicki sat between Stephanie's legs and probed her luscious pussy gently
with her tongue licking Stephanie's clit, which swelled immediately to Vicki's
touch. Vicki next enveloped Stephanie's clit with her mouth and rolled it
between her teeth emitting squeals of delight from Stephanie signaling Vicki
that she was driving her wild. Vicki continued to eat her, lick her and probe
Stephanie's tight sweet hole with her tongue. Then Vicki slipped a finger into
Stephanie's dripping pussy and finger fucked her while she sucked and nibbled
her swollen clit.  
  
Vicki felt Stephanie's clit swell and stiffen as she grabbed Vicki by the
hair, forcing Vicki's tongue deeper inside. Stephanie ground her clit against
Vicki and her body quaked with orgasm. Vicki heard her breathing and moaning
become uncontrollable as Stephanie continued to push against Vicki's face,
grinding her pussy against her and cumming all over her face. Vicki hungrily
sucked up Stephanie's juices. Both of them stood under the water for a few
more minutes relishing their new found pleasure before leaving the shower.
They then dried each other with fluffy Turkish towels as Stephanie paid
particular attention to Vicki's ass.  
  
"You know Vicki it is going to be very difficult to keep from fucking your
ass." Stephanie said and then, "But I am sure that you know why. It is so
perfectly shaped it will be difficult for anyone to keep from touching you and
grabbing your delicious ass."  
  
"You are going to get me hot again with talk like that," Vicki crooned.  
  
"I think what you need now is my nice hard cock in your hot beautiful ass,"
Stephanie stated somewhat firmly.  
  
"I have never had anything in my ass other than your finger and any cock would
seem much too big for me," Vicki said as goosed bumps appeared on her body.  
  
"Well we will have to take it slow and gradually introduce bigger things into
your ass," Stephanie said and then, "Trust me I will guide you and make sure
that you are not hurt. I know just the thing to get started."  
  
Stephanie noticed Vicki trembled a little and that goose bumps appeared on her
body. Stephanie took that as a sign of encouragement so she had Vicki bend
over the bathroom tub as she knelt behind Vicki and began to tongue her nether
hole. Stephanie got Vicki's asshole wet with her tongue and then inserted a
saliva moistened finger into the opening of her ass. Stephanie pressed her
finger in Vicki's sphincter and let it slide in up to the knuckle causing
Vicki to flinch and groan. Stephanie removed her finger and then she spat into
Vicki's ass allowing her saliva to moisten her further. Then Stephanie dipped
her tongue back into Vicki's bung hole and Vicki almost came again with the
eroticism of the moment. Stephanie alternated between eating Vicki's ass and
finger fucking it. Stephanie's fingers now slid easily in and out of Vicki's
hot asshole.  
  
"Come back to bed," Stephanie ordered.  
  
Vicki went back into the bedroom and Stephanie had her get on the bed on all
fours with her beautiful ass pointed in the air. Stephanie told Vicki she
would be right back and she left the room. Stephanie returned shortly carrying
a jar of lube and a string of beads. Stephanie applied the lubricant to
Vicki's asshole and Vicki felt the soothing cool lube coat her rectum. The
Stephanie began to insert the anal beads into Vicki's ass one at a time. Vicki
unable to talk allowed Stephanie to have her way with her. One by one
Stephanie pushed the beads into Vicki's ass until all six of them were buried
in her rectum.  
  
"Are you okay, any pain? Stephanie asked.  
  
Vicki nodded that she was okay and that there was no pain. Vicki only felt the
fullness in her ass from the anal beads as they were clearly thicker then any
finger and they were deeper than anything else had ever been. Stephanie
massaged Vicki's beautiful ass cheeks and reached between Vicki's legs to
diddle her clit. Vicki felt herself getting hot again and she felt the
onslaught of another orgasm.  
  
Stephanie sensed it too and she rolled Vicki over on her back. Stephanie then
got between Vicki's legs and placed her mouth on Vicki's pussy. Stephanie
placed Vicki's thighs on her shoulders giving her complete access to Vicki's
twat. Stephanie ate Vicki with a passion and she felt Vicki start to tense as
her orgasm built within her. Vicki groaned as she tightened her thighs around
Stephanie's neck as the first wave rocked her body. As Vicki began to cum,
Stephanie pulled gently on the anal beads so that they popped out of Vicki's
ass one at a time.  
  
Vicki had never felt anything like it and she seemed to cum as each bead
cleared her asshole. Her body went into spasm and jerked like never before.
She was overcome with the lust of the moment as it seemed she would cum
forever. Stephanie kept her mouth glued to Vicki's pussy throughout her
orgasms and sucked every drop of Vicki's nectar into her mouth. Vicki finally
collapsed on the bed her body spent and incapable of any more movement. The
sensation in Vicki's ass felt as if the anal beads were still in her but she
knew Stephanie had pulled them out of her hole.  
  
"I have never cum like that in my life," Vicki said, finally able to talk.  
  
"That's just a start and just think we have the whole soccer season together,"
Stephanie replied.  
  
Stephanie smiled to her self as she was pleased that she had just added
another mother to her organization of soccer moms. She couldn't wait to tell
Maria and also find out how Maria was doing with her own recruitment.
Stephanie also thought about her daughters and she wondered how things went
with them and Vicki's daughter Trudy.  
  
MARIA SHOPS FOR A NEW DRESS  
  
Maria wanted to buy some new dresses particularly the backless ones which she
preferred. Her tits were firm enough that she could still go without a bra
when she wore the backless dress. Maria located a ladies boutique in the mall
that carried exactly the dresses she desired.  
  
Shirley noticed the Spanish beauty immediately as she entered the store.
Shirley recognized Maria as the new teacher and soccer coach at her daughter's
school. Lauren had already spoken of Maria and told her mother how excited the
team was to have a new coach. Shirley made her way over to Maria and
introduced herself and offered to be of service.  
  
"Good afternoon, my name is Shirley. May I help you with something today?"
Shirley said as she was taken with Maria's beauty.  
  
"Yes thank you. My name is Maria and I am interested in looking at some
backless dresses," Maria said as she surveyed the saleswoman.  
  
Maria's once over made Shirley a little nervous and her mind flashed back to
her daughter and Marcia in bed together. Shirley blushed a little and then
told Maria to follow her. Maria noticed the woman's uneasiness and she smiled
almost knowingly to herself. Shirley led her to the rack with the dresses were
located.  
  
"You are the new soccer coach, aren't you? My daughter Lauren has spoken
highly of you," Shirley said.  
  
"Yes I am the coach and I am looking forward to the season, thank you," Maria
replied.  
  
"Well let's see here are some dresses that you asked about. Would you like to
try any of them on?" Shirley asked.  
  
Maria replied, "Yes I would," and she picked four dresses from the rack.  
  
"Come I'll show you to the dressing rooms," Shirley offered and led Maria
toward the back of the store.  
  
Each dressing room was private and had a door that could be locked. Shirley
placed the dresses in one of the rooms and she turned to leave Maria alone.
Then Shirley surprised herself when she asked Maria if she needed any help.  
  
Maria smiled and replied, "Yes that would be very nice if you could help me."  
  
Maria closed and locked the dressing room door and slipped off her blouse and
jeans. Shirley gasped as she took in the girl's beautiful flawless skin as
Maria stood there in her bra and panty. Shirley's slight gasp did not go
unnoticed by Maria. Maria slipped on one of the dresses and asked Shirley to
tie it in back. Shirley tied the dress strings around the back of Maria's
neck. Maria looked in the mirror and checked the dress in different poses.  
  
"You know it is hard to tell how it truly fits with my bra on. Do you mind if
I take off my bra?" Maria asked Shirley.  
  
Shirley stumbled getting the answer out as she felt her loin stir, "No, please
do, that way you will get the true feel of the dress."  
  
Maria smiled to herself and then asked Shirley to unclasp her bra for her as
she let the top of the dress drop to her waist. Shirley nervously reached for
the bra to unhook it and her fingers shook as she fumbled with the clasp.
Finally Shirley succeeded in opening the clasp and Maria slid the bra off her
shoulders. Maria then turned and handed her bra to Shirley. Shirley took the
bra from Maria but then she just stood there staring at Maria's beautiful
breasts. Shirley had the strongest desire to reach out and touch Maria's
breasts but she had never touched another woman so she just froze.  
  
Maria pulled the dress top back up again and had Shirley tie it once again.
Maria could feel Shirley's fingers shake as she tried to tie the dress as
before. Maria again looked at herself in the mirror and checked herself out.
This time she held her tits in her hands and hoisted them up in the dress as
she checked herself in the mirror. Maria then untied the dress and took it off
and handed it to Shirley who continued to stare at her beautiful breasts.  

Maria spoke first, "I like that one. Now let me try this one on."  
  
Maria tired on all the dresses and as she took the last one off she turned to
Shirley and held up her tits to the woman, "Do you think my breasts are nice?"  
  
Shirley was shocked and lost for words but she managed to reply in a shaky
voice, "Yes they are very nice very beautiful."  
  
"Would you like to touch them Shirley? I know that you have been staring at
them all this time," Maria asked in a sexy tone.  
  
Shirley didn't answer so Maria walked closer, took Shirley's hands and placed
them on her tits. Shirley felt the warm firm globes in her hands as for the
first time in her life she held another woman's tits. Shirley felt Maria's
nipples harden in her palms and then she felt a new stirring in her loins.
Maria placed her hands on Shirley's and the she moved Shirley's hands around
on her tits.  
  
"Would you like to kiss my breasts? They are so aroused I would like for you
to kiss them," Maria urged her.  
  
Maria took Shirley's face between her hands and guided it to her breasts.
Shirley seemed to be in a trance as she allowed herself to be seduced. Shirley
kissed Maria's tits and licked her nipples just as she had watched her
daughter do to Marcia. Shirley lost sight of where she was and she now focused
solely on Maria's gorgeous tits as she sucked on a woman's breast for the
first time in her life. Shirley was overcome with desire and her own pussy was
on fire. She then felt a steady push on her shoulders from Maria's hands.
Maria was clearly pushing Shirley to her knees.  
  
"Shirley I want you to take off my panties," Maria said firmly.  
  
Shirley couldn't believe her own actions as she hooked her fingers in the
panty waistband and pulled them down Maria's shapely legs. Maria stepped out
of her panties and Shirley starred right into the young pussy with a tuft of
black hair. Maria took hold of Shirley's head and guided it toward her pussy.  
  
"Maria please don't, I have never done this. I don't know what to do," Shirley
pleaded.  
  
"Nonsense you know what to do or at least what you want to do," Maria replied
and pulled the woman's head into her snatch.  
  
  
  
With a moan of pleasure Shirley stretched and kissed Maria's pussy. Her warm
lips made the teacher shiver as one of her hands caressed Maria's ass. As she
breathed on Maria's pussy the woman's warm breath made her tingle. Maria
moaned out loud unable to control her own gyrations as Shirley moved closer
and closer to her pussy.  
  
At the first touch of her tongue Maria nearly jumped out of her skin. Maria
had experienced this many times before but there was something very special
and very erotic doing it in a boutique dressing room. She moaned loudly again
as Shirley's tongue timidly lapped at her cunt. Shirley shifted underneath her
for a better grip on Maria's ass, and the hot tongue snaked out again and the
woman's hands tightened on Maria's ass bringing her pussy closer to her face
as she licked Maria's juices.  
  
Maria moved her hips, gyrated, thrust, and whimpered as Shirley began to lick
her more insistently copying everything that she had seen her daughter Lauren
do to Marcia. The woman's lips parted and she sucked on Maria's skin, taking
parts of her into her mouth, she sucked softly and then dove back inside
Maria's pussy with her tongue. Shirley was inexperienced but she was a quick
learner and she was doing very well. Maria cried out as Shirley's lips found
her clit.  
  
With just the slightest brushes of Shirley's tongue and lips against the
sensitive clit Maria felt her body go into convulsions. She felt the juices
flow out of her body and she cried out as her buttocks tensed in Shirley's
hands and she drove her pussy into her eager older woman's face. The orgasm
rocked Maria's body as her pussy pulsed and her muscles tensed and she came
gushing onto Shirley's face.  
  
"Shirley!" Maria cried out. "Shirley, don't stop, Oh God don't stop!"  
  
Shirley plunged her tongue deep inside Maria drinking her juices as they
poured out. Each lap of the woman's long tongue sent more shivers through
Maria's body, tingles shot up her spine, down through her legs, around her
arms and through her pussy. As it finally it ceased there were still slight
tremors of aftershock shaking her as she pushed against Shirley's face.
Shirley continued to lick Maria tenderly savoring the experience of her first
girl on girl sex. Shirley's silky tongue ran up and down Maria's widespread
slit and Maria struggled to maintain her balance. With a reluctant groan Maria
moved her body away from Shirley and sat down on the chair in the dressing
room. Shirley crawled over to Maria and placed her head in the teacher's lap.
Shirley whimpered and murmured as she kissed the Spanish girl's smooth thighs.  
  
"Thank you, thank you, oh, thank you!" exclaimed Shirley as Maria stroked her
head.  
  
Maria pushed Shirley back from her thighs and smiled at the woman, "You did
quite well for your first time. Now let me return the favor," Maria said.  
  
Shirley was leery of taking off her clothes so Maria just removed her panties
and pushed the woman's skirt up as she had Shirley sit on the chair. A still
naked Maria knelt in front of Shirley and covered the woman's pussy with her
experienced mouth. Shirley was so turned on that she orgamsed the instant
Maria's tongue touched her clit. Shirley's body went into convulsions and she
held Maria's head tightly to her pussy as her body was rocked with her climax.
Maria licked up all her juices and then stood up and kissed Shirley on the
mouth and plunged her tongue in the woman's mouth. Shirley shivered again in
the hands of her younger lover.  
  
Shirley pulled her panties back on as she watched the beautiful Spanish girl
get dressed. They left the dressing room and moved to the checkout area. Maria
had decided on two of the dresses for which Shirley provided a generous
discount. As they said goodbye Maria told Shirley that she should consider
becoming part of the soccer mom's group. Maria said that she would have
Stephanie get in touch with her and explain the program. Maria then left the
store. Shirley couldn't believe what had just happened and it seemed more like
a dream than reality. However it was real and she had had her first female
encounter and she now truly understood why her daughter enjoyed sex with
girls.  
  
ANNA VISITS LAUREN  
  
Sunday afternoon Anna had made her way over to Lauren's house. They planed to
hang out by Lauren's pool and take advantage of Lauren's mother Shirley
working that afternoon. It had been a couple of days since Anna and Lauren had
made love and Anna was quite anxious to get caught up. They had gone up to
Lauren's room before to change into their bikinis when Anna decided they
should make love first.  
  
"Miss me?" Anna asked as she stood naked in front of Lauren.  
  
"Of course," Lauren answered also naked.  
  
"Show me!" Anna ordered.  
  
Lauren moved toward Anna partly out of desire and partly out of intimidation.
Lauren moved her head down and repeated what she had done to Anna so often.
The tip of her tongue parted Anna's lips and Lauren felt her respond and felt
her shudder. Anna's hips rocked and she pushed her pelvis against the tip of
Lauren's tongue. She kept her legs wide and out of the way as she opened
herself to Lauren's hot searching tongue. With her feet planted on either side
of Lauren, Anna clenched her hands as she pushed her hips up to meet Lauren's
face. Anna was hot and her body squirmed as her hips gyrated in an attempt to
match Lauren's dexterous tongue.  
  
Lauren parted and separated Anna's puffy, glistening labia and then licked
Anna slowly along her pussy down to her ass and back again. Lauren circled her
tongue teasing Anna and then licked over her perineum. Anna's pussy lips were
soft beneath Lauren's tongue and then Lauren opened up Anna's hood using the
tip of her tongue and delicately teased Anna's stiffening, hardening clit out
as it poked out from beneath its hood. Lauren's tongue made long sweeps all
the way from Anna's ass, over her perineum and back the soft wet mushy opening
of her pussy to her tingling, throbbing clit.  
  
Lauren quickened the motion of her tongue and played Anna's sex like an
instrument. Lauren moved her hands around to Anna's muscular ass cheeks and
placed a moist finger against the puckered nether hole. Lauren smiled as she
gently increased the pressure of her finger on Anna's anus and it yielded as
it accepted the tip of Lauren's finger and gripped it tightly. Lauren then
fingered Anna's pussy as her tongue continued its circular motion and lapped
at the engorged clit. Anna's body writhed under Lauren's three pronged attack.  
  
"Oh god, take me, take me!" Anna cried, as the penetration of the fingers
combined with her clit lapped, licked, sucked and sent her over the edge.  
  
Lauren didn't let up as she pressed her fingers deeper into Anna's pussy and
asshole. Lauren mouth sucked relentlessly on Anna's clit as Anna's body
spasmed and contracted around the probing fingers. Anna's gasps turned to
screams as her body exploded in a thunderous climax. Lauren continued her
assault on Anna's body until she felt her lover's body tense yet again as a
second orgasm swept through Anna's body.  
  
"Oh my God, oh fuck, you did miss me didn't you?" Anna gasped as she stroked
Lauren silky hair.  
  
Lauren slowed her ministrations as she let Anna recover from the peak of her
climax. Lauren felt Anna's body relax as it moved to a post orgasmic state.
The fingers slipped from Anna's holes causing her to shudder and gasp as they
were replaced with the cool air. Lauren stood up and the two beautiful naked
teenagers embraced and kissed deeply. They made quite a picture with Lauren's
petite body and Anna's tall muscular form locked in an embrace.  
  
"I have a surprise for you but I want to save it for later. Let's go for a
swim now," Anna said with a smile and patted her lover on her shapely bottom.  
  
The two girls donned their bikinis and headed out to the swimming pool. They
spent the afternoon sunning, swimming and occasionally teasing each other in
the water. They playfully fingered each other and fondled each other
throughout the afternoon. When it was time to go back in the house both the
girls were ready for more action. The two girls went back to Lauren's bedroom
and shed their bikinis. Lauren jumped up on the bed, got on her back and
patted her pussy between her spread legs.  
  
Anna crawled between Lauren's legs, flattened her tongue and dragged it slowly
over Lauren's swollen pussy lips. The sudden contact of that warm soft tongue
on her inner folds caused Lauren to gasp. Her hands clutched Anna's head and
directed the mouth to her throbbing clit. Anna's hands slid down and Lauren
arched her back and screamed in pleasure when one of those long fingers forced
its way into her channel. Anna held her finger still and felt the inner
muscles of Lauren's pussy caress it before she returned to lightly tonguing
Lauren's clitoral area. She licked and teased in an unhurried fashion, swirled
her tongue all over Lauren's hot wet flesh, but never more than grazed the
smaller woman's nub. Lauren found herself in an agony of pleasure as Anna
continued to torture her. Anna stopped her tender attention and looked up
Lauren's body. Lauren's eyes were glassy and she was nearly delirious with
need. Anna felt the muscles in her own pussy contract violently at the mere
sight of Lauren and her state of arousal.  
  
Anna stood up despite Lauren's efforts to hold her in place. Lauren cried out
for Anna to finish her, make her cum. But then Lauren's eyes grew to the size
of saucers as watched Anna put on a leather harness around her waist with a
triangle of leather that covered her pussy. Then Lauren noticed the imposing
dildo that bobbed before the Amazon girl. It was flesh colored and very life
like with veins, ridges and even a pair of balls. It was easily ten inches
long and so thick the small girl doubted she could get her fingers around it.  
  
"This is my surprise, like it?" Anna asked with a smirk.  
  
"It's huge, my God!" Lauren exclaimed.  
  
Anna smiled and knelt again between Lauren's legs. When she lifted the small
girl's legs to her shoulders Lauren suddenly seemed to realize what the Anna
was about to do.  
  
"No! Wait, it's too big," Lauren's words were cut off as Anna grasped the big
cock and rubbed the head up and down Lauren's soaking slit.  
  
Once the head was coated in Lauren's juices Anna positioned it at Lauren's
entrance. Anna held it with both hands to keep it stiff and on target as the
heavy latex would bend rather than penetrate otherwise. Lauren groaned when
she felt the head nestle at her opening. She had never counted on this and
part of her mind wanted to say stop, but her pussy wanted something in it in a
way Lauren had never felt. The urgent demands of her body overruled her mind
and she gripped bed sheet tightly in anticipation of it hurting.  
  
"Relax," Anna cooed.  
  
Lauren nodded her head and took a deep breath as the big girl pressed forward
slowly with her hips and Lauren felt the head slip into her. It was very wide
and Anna slowed her forward progress. Lauren felt the muscles at the entrance
to her pussy clench and fight to keep the intruder out. Anna however kept up
the slow steady pressure and Lauren felt her muscles begin to give way as the
head of the massive phallus entered. It stretched her open in a way she could
never have imagined. For a fleeting moment Lauren wondered if she would be
injured, but the thought was driven from her mind as the head slipped past the
wall of constricting muscle and her inner lips closed upon the thick shaft.  
  
Lauren felt full to the point of her pussy splitting open but it also tingled,
itched and created an intense desire within her body. Anna proved to be a very
thoughtful lover as she let Lauren adjust to the big cock before she slowly
pressed forward again. The blunt head of the dildo slid deeper into Lauren and
forced her inner channel to expand. Lauren gasped and Anna instantly stopped.
Lauren felt positively stuffed and when she opened her eyes to gaze down her
body, she was shocked to see that barely two inches of the fake cock had
entered her. Anna began to slowly rock her hips but she was careful not to
thrust forward as yet. Anna moved in an even motion that withdrew a few inches
of the big cock and then pushed it back in. Lauren's body jerked as if she was
intermittently touched with electricity.  
  
With infinite patience and care Anna worked the big dildo into Lauren's
quivering pussy. Anna's eyes were glued to Lauren's cunt as she watched the
pink lips settle around the fake shaft and see the sticky wetness coating the
shaft when she withdrew. Lauren felt her inner muscles give way as the huge
phallus finally came to rest with only an inch still outside Lauren's pink
lips. Lauren was totally lost in ecstasy as she could felt the huge cock head
resting in a place where nothing had ever touched before. Her inner muscles
involuntarily spasmed around the big dildo and Lauren thoroughly believed she
could feel each and every vein or ridge in her pussy. It was the largest dildo
Lauren had ever had in her pussy.  
  
Anna slowly withdrew her cock and then stabbed it back in. She went slowly and
gently at first allowing Lauren to get used to it and then she really went to
town on this petite girl. Lauren's hips began to thrust back to meet Anna's.
With that reaction Anna wrapped her arms around Lauren's thighs and held her
tight as she lengthened the strokes and picked up the tempo. Anna pounded
Lauren's sweet pussy with long powerful strokes.  
  
Anna and Lauren never heard Shirley come home that afternoon. Shirley had
spotted Anna's car parked outside and normally she would have called out to
Lauren and announced that she was home. Buy since witnessing the sessions
between Lauren and Marcia the past two days, Shirley decided to enter the
house quietly. Shirley walked upstairs quietly and listened outside her
daughter's bedroom for any telltale signs of love making. Shirley heard her
daughter cry out in pleasure and urge Anna to fuck her. Shirley peaked around
the door and peered into the bedroom. Shirley was shocked by the scene in her
daughter's bedroom. Here was her petite daughter being fucked by her massive
classmate with the largest cock, fake or real, that she had ever seen. It was
all Shirley could do to keep from screaming at the two of them to stop.  
  
"Oh yeah fuck me Anna. Fuck me with your big dick. Fuck me hard," Lauren cried
out.  
  
Shirley couldn't believe that those words came out of her daughter's mouth.
Shirley was glued to the spot as she watched her daughter get ravished with
the huge dildo attached to the muscular Anna.  
  
The huge dildo stretched and filled her as never before. Each stroke produced
tiny sounds in her throat that escaped as whimpers and little cries of passion
mixed in with her ragged breathing. Anna was still fucking her slowly, but it
was unlike anything she had ever done before. Anna's hips rolled upwards with
each thrust driving the dildo deeply into Lauren as it made constant contact
with her clit. Pleasure ripped through Lauren's body as she tossed her head
from side to side and gripped the bed sheet when her orgasm rocked her body.
Anna never slowed down but actually picked up the pace and drove in with more
and more force until Lauren collapsed in orgasmic bliss. The first orgasm was
still rippling though her consciousness when a second even more shattering
peak arrived. Lauren cried out and her back arched until only her shoulder
blades were touching the mattress.  
  
Without warning Lauren's pussy spasmed and her inner muscles clenched the
heavy thick shaft as this orgasm was beyond the scope of any orgasm that she
had ever had. Anna withdrew the huge cock with an obscene popping sound and
then crawled up onto the bed and lay down on her side with her head propped up
on her hand. She smiled down at Lauren and playfully kissed her. Anna then
looked up and spotted Lauren's mother in the bedroom mirror. It took Shirley
several seconds to realize that she had been spotted and she pulled back from
the doorway but she knew she was too late. Shirley hurried to her own bedroom
and closed the door.  
  
"God, you're a great fuck Lauren," Lauren said in a weak voice as she raised
her head and looked down on her new lover's face and then with a slight tremor
she added, "That was incredible, absolutely incredible."  
  
"I'm glad you enjoyed it," Anna said with a smile.  
  
"Enjoyed it, I didn't want it to end," Lauren said in a raspy voice.  
  
"It doesn't have to end," Anna said as she reached down grasped the thick
dildo and slapped it against Lauren's creamy thigh, "I can go all night, if
you like."  
  
Lauren giggled and said, "You could kill someone with that thing,"  
  
"Would you like to be orgasmed to death?" Anna asked.  
  
"Maybe later but right now I need to rest," giggled Lauren.  
  
The two teenagers lay next to each other and stroked each other's body. Lauren
had just cum like never before and she was not quite ready for another round.
Lauren slowly nodded off in Anna's arms. Anna looked down on her and smiled at
her petite lover. Anna eased herself out of the bed and stood up quietly with
the big dildo dangling between her legs. Anna reached down and playfully
stroked the large rubber cock. Anna wondered to herself what Lauren's mother
was up to and then she left Lauren's bedroom and walked toward Shirley's room
as the big dick bobbed in front of her.  
  
ANNA AND SHIRLEY  
  
Shirley was in her bedroom on her bed with her fingers buried in her pussy.
Her mind flashed back and forth between the visions of her daughter and Marcia
and then her daughter and Anna. Shirley then reflected on her own affair
earlier that afternoon with Maria. Shirley had worked herself into frenzy and
she was just on the verge of a massive orgasm when she spotted a movement in
her room. She thought her eyes were playing tricks on her as she tried to
focus on the figure standing in the doorway to her bedroom. The figure leaned
against the door jam and appeared to be naked and looked was displaying an
impressive erection. The person was looking at her on the bed and then slowly
turned and moved in her direction. As the person approached Shirley could see
better and then she realized it was Anna. Anna slowly walked toward her and
closed the space between them and she could now see that Anna had an erect
cock. Shirley knew it had to be the dildo that Anna just used to fuck Lauren's
brains out.  

Anna looked menacing wearing the strap-on with her Amazon physique. She was
like the hunter stalking her prey and Shirley being the over matched prey knew
she had only one choice, to be submissive. Anna knelt up on the bed and looked
down at her and smiled.  
  
"How do you like my cock," she asked in a sultry manner?  
  
"Please!" Shirley whispered in fear.  
  
"I have been thinking about this for awhile but I wanted to wait until the
right moment," Anna whispered, "Don't worry Lauren is asleep."  
  
Anna lay beside Shirley and played with her body, cupped her breasts and
stroked the nipples for quite sometime. Then she lowered her head and took one
of the hardened nipples between her teeth and bit down on it gently. Shirley
gasped with delight as Anna rolled the nub in her teeth. Anna then rolled over
so she was on top of Shirley and slowly stroked the artificial penis across
her perineum.  
  
She crawled between Shirley's spread thighs and pressed the head of the dildo
against her gaping slit. Shirley moaned and opened her legs wider as Anna
worked the phallus inside her. She slowly thrust forward until the massive
cock was completely buried inside Shirley's tight cunt. Anna then started
rotating her hips, churning the toy about as she kept the fake cock in
constant contact with Shirley's clit.  
  
Shirley wrapped her legs around the teenager's muscular torso opening herself
up fully to the Anna's ministrations. Anna was soon pummeling the fake dick
harder and faster with her stomach slamming against Shirley's abdomen. Shirley
could feel the intense orgasm building up in her slender form as the Amazon
body pounded the phallic-shaped object in and out of her sopping wet pussy.
Shirley's body grew rigid and just as she was about to scream Anna kissed her
and forced a tongue into open mouth.  
  
Her body wracked by the orgasm Shirley convulsed spontaneously while trying to
catch her breath. Anna was still moments away from her own climactic
conclusion and she continued to pummel the artificial penis into Shirley. In
the dimly lit room sweat glistened off of Anna's skin and poured down her back
and sides, soaking the sheet beneath them. As Anna's own orgasm flooded her
groin, her movement finally slowed down to the light bucking of her hips until
everything has subsided.  
  
They rested in each other's arms with Anna on top of Shirley and the fake cock
still buried in her pussy. Slowly Anna lifted herself off of Shirley and
backed the dildo out of her womb. Anna rolled Shirley over on my stomach and
began to massage her body. She worked Shirley's shoulders down to her lower
back and as she straddled her Shirley could feel the imitation cock brushing
her buttocks. Anna continued to massage Shirley's body working the knots and
kinks out of it. She moved her hands to Shirley's legs and worked them up to
her butt. Anna rubbed Shirley's shapely ass cheeks and then lifted her up by
the hips elevating her ass. Shirley behaved as if she was under a spell and
she allowed herself to be manipulated under Anna's control.  
  
"I have to fuck you once more before Lauren wakes up," Anna said in a raspy
voice.  
  
"Please not in my ass," Shirley pleaded.  
  
Anna laughed and replied, "No not in your ass at least not this time."  
  
Anna eased the fake dick into Shirley's pussy as she held on to the woman's
ass cheeks. Anna fucked her slowly and massaged her ass. Shirley reached her
own hand up to her pussy and diddled her clit as the phallus plunged in and
out of her hole. Anna seemed mesmerized with Shirley's ass and she molded it
in her hands as she fucked her. Shirley had several more orgasms before Anna
finally stopped fucking her. Shirley's last orgasm was the most intense as
Anna finger fucked her asshole as the dildo pounded her pussy.  
  
Shirley collapsed on the bed and pleaded, "Anna no more, please no more, I
can't take anymore!"  
  
As Shirley lay there she thought about how easily she had been seduced into
the world of lesbianism first by Maria and now by Anna. Shirley felt she was
powerless against any assertive female who seduced her. She couldn't believe
how she was putty in the teenager's hands and why she never protested or put
up a struggle. Shirley's thoughts were interrupted when Anna patted her on the
bottom and spoke.  
  
"I am going back to check on Lauren. Maybe the three of us can get together
when she wakes up," Anna said smugly as she left the room with the dildo
harness thrown over her shoulder.  
  
Shirley cringed at Anna's suggestion that the three of them get together. She
certainly wouldn't make love to her own daughter nor would Lauren want to have
sex with her mother. Shirley tried to convince herself that it would never
happen but then the image of her beautiful naked daughter with the other girls
came back to mind. Shirley tried to put the thoughts of Lauren out of her mind
but she then heard noises coming from Lauren's room. Were Lauren and Anna
having sex again? Shirley decided to find out and she walked naked down the
hall to her daughter's room not knowing what she would do when she arrived
there.  
  
NEXT CHAPTER  
  
_In the next chapter the team and its starters will be determined. The soccer
moms group will be formed and a kick off meeting with the coaches will take
place. The coaches, players and moms will learn even more about each other as
they prepare for the start of the season._




        Lesbian Soccer Moms Ch. 03


PRACTICE AND PREPARATION  
  
INTRODUCTION  
  
In this chapter the two coaches get the team ready for the season and the
opening game against Lincoln Central. Stephanie organizes the soccer moms and
holds a kickoff meeting with Maria and then plans a follow-up meeting with the
other mothers. The twins learn that Lauren has been seeing Anna so they decide
to invite them over for a get together with their friend Trudy. Thanks again
for the great feedback I hope you enjoy this chapter as well.  
  
PRACTICE, PRACTICE, PRACTICE  
  
The first week of practice was grueling as Maria put her squad through intense
workouts. Even the assistant coach Janet was concerned that Maria was pushing
the girls to hard. A number of the girls had already dropped out but that did
not concern Maria. She was determined to have a fit team and a team that could
push it when the opponents were tired.  
  
The school had been too cheap to video tape any of last season but Maria had
located a couple of parents who had taped the games for their daughters. Maria
was able to borrow the tapes and she reviewed them over and over before she
returned them. She drew two conclusions from the past season. The first was
that last year's team was in horrible condition and that they had nothing left
toward the end of the game. The second thing she learned is that without Anna
in the goal they wouldn't have won a single game. Anna was incredible as she
made one uncanny save after the other. The games they won were on penalty
kicks because Anna always shut out the other team. However the girls that made
the penalty kicks for Ridgeway had graduated and Maria would need others to
step up.  
  
So far the Kesler twins, Gretchen and Erica were her offensive best players.
Wendy was also a good forward as was Lauren, Janie and Janet. The defense
would be adequate with Amanda, Christy, Susie and Liz at halfback and full
back positions and of course with Anna as goalie. Maria knew that she didn't
have much depth with Judy, Beth, Nancy and Holly.  
  
The first game would be in three weeks against Lincoln South, the favorite to
win the conference and a state title contender. To make matters worse was that
the game was at Lincoln Central where they were almost impossible to beat.
They also had a reputation for having the officials in their pocket. Maria
would have to come up with a good game plan to even be competitive. But first
things first and that was to get the team in shape.  
  
Maria called a practice for Saturday morning in addition to the five week
days. It was light practice and Maria walked the girls through drills and
strategies. The girls left practice feeling very good as they knew they were
getting fitter and their confidence was growing. After practice Maria and
Janet went over a few things in the coach's office. Janet was seated and
looking at some plays that Maria had drawn up and Maria was standing along
side the desk explaining them to Janet.  
  
Janet knew they were alone and she let her hand slide up Maria's leg from her
calf to her thigh. Maria flinched at the surprise contact but then went back
to explaining the plays. Janet continued to stroke Maria's leg and then worked
her hand up to Maria's butt. Janet slipped her hand under Maria's shorts and
into her panties. Maria sighed as Janet cupped and fondled Maria's ass cheek
and teased her crack. Janet then slipped her finger into the crotch area in
search for the opening to Maria's pussy. Maria groaned out loud as Janet's
finger penetrated her vagina and sought out her engorged clit. Maria's clit
was so large that it was always easy to find when she was aroused. Janet
twirled the hard little pearl in her fingers as Maria moaned and grasped the
desk to steady herself.  
  
Just then a knock came at the door that startled both Maria and Janet. Maria
went to answer the door as Janet licked her fingers clean of Maria's pussy
juice. Maria unlocked and opened the door and saw the Kesler twins standing
outside.  
  
"What's up girls?" Maria asked.  
  
"My mother wanted us to ask you over for dinner this evening and she has some
things to discuss with you about the Soccer Mom's Club," Erica stated.  
  
"Well tell your mom that I would be very pleased to come to dinner this
evening," Maria replied and then asked, "What time should I be there?"  
  
"Mom said around six would be good," Erica replied.  
  
"Okay I will see you at six," Maria accepted.  
  
The girls smiled and left and Maria watched them go down the stairs toward the
exit before she closed the office door and locked it. Maria turned and walked
back to the desk where Janet was sitting and smiled.  
  
"Well that was close, I'm glad the door was locked," Maria sighed.  
  
"Did they leave?" Janet asked.  
  
"Yes I watched them go down the stairs," Maria replied.  
  
"Good now where were we?" Janet teased.  
  
Janet held Maria's hips and steered her so that her back was against the desk.
Janet then unfastened Maria's shorts and pulled them down and off her legs.
Next Janet hooked her fingers in the waistband of Maria's panty and slowly
peeled them down her legs. Maria lifted one leg at a time ad smiled as Janet
removed the panties. Janet then knelt in front of Maria and kissed her pubes
lightly and tickled her vulva. Maria gasped and placed her hands on the desk
behind her for support.  
  
Maria leaked her sex juices as Janet tunneled her tongue up into her and
sucked her juices. Janet stroked Maria's rounded buttocks and then ran a
finger over her anus to titillate her nether hole. Janet her fingers back to
Maria's pussy and found her hard clit. Janet moved her fingers inside Maria
trying to find the spot inside her that always caused such a wonderful
sensation. Janet plunged her tongue into Maria's velvet depths and sucked on
her hard engorged clit. Maria moaned aloud and Janet smiled to herself.  
  
The Kessler twins had not left the building but were at the foot of the stairs
whispering to each other. Erica told her sister that she was sure the two
coaches were getting it on before the twins interrupted them. Gretchen didn't
believe that they would be that brazen to do it in the coach's office.  
  
"I'm telling you that I heard Maria moan at least twice. I know they were
doing something," Erica told her sister quietly.  
  
"Well I didn't hear anything so let's go," Gretchen replied almost angry with
her sister.  
  
"Let's go back upstairs and listen outside the door. If we don't hear anything
we'll leave," Erica offered.  
  
Gretchen knew that her sister wouldn't be satisfied otherwise so she agreed,
"All right but just for a few minutes then we go."  
  
The twins quietly walked back up the stairs and positioned themselves right
outside the door to the coach's office. They could hear murmurs, sighs and
groans coming from inside the office.  
  
"Oh you have a great tongue Janet," Maria gasped.  
  
Janet continued to suck Maria's clitty and tongued the tender inner spot. It
took only a few minutes until Maria began to thresh her hips and moan aloud.
Janet intensified her actions and Maria's body went rigid as she cried out as
she climaxed.  
  
"Oh God Janet that's it, I'm cumming," Maria cried out softly but loud enough
to be heard outside the office.  
  
Erica teasingly punched Gretchen in I told you so manner. Gretchen nodded her
agreement that Erica had been right. They continued to listen to the two
coaches on the other side of the door.  
  
Maria's pussy juices literally gushed into Janet's mouth. They were so copious
that they ran down Janet's chin and onto Maria's squirming thighs. Maria's
pussy spasmed and clamped down on Janet's fingers as her juices spurted out of
her pussy. Janet continued to tongue the pussy as best she could until Maria
let out a long moan and went limp. Janet removed her fingers and softly licked
Maria's inner pussy lips as Maria braced herself against the desk.  
  
"That was fantastic Janet as always, now let me do you," Maria said as she
patted the assistant coach on the head.  
  
The twins took that as their cue to leave. It was obvious that Janet had eaten
Maria's pussy and that Maria was about to reciprocate. The two teenagers went
quietly down the stairs and left the building. They couldn't wait to get home
and tell their mother about Maria and Janet.  
  
Maria had removed Janet's shorts and panties by the time the twins left the
building and she now had her tongue lapping away at Janet's tasty pussy. Maria
wrapped her lips around Janet's clit and sucked it hard. Janet cried out in
ecstasy and thrust her hips toward Maria's face. Maria moved her hand up her
assistant's leg and stroked the smooth skin with her fingertips until her hand
met Janet's pussy. Maria slid her first finger and then added her middle
finger into the slick folds of Janet's cunt. Maria wiggled her fingers around
inside Janet as she sucked on her hard throbbing clit.  
  
Janet cried out and tightened her pussy around Maria's hand squeezing her
fingers. Maria continued working her fingers in and out of Janet's pussy and
sucked her clit even harder than before flicking Janet's clit with her tongue
and tickling the tiny tip of the erect nub while she sucked on it.  
  
"Oh please, oh Maria please!" Janet cried.  
  
Janet's hips humped Maria's hand as her fingers pumped in and out of the
assistant coach's pussy. Janet's fragrant skin ground against Maria's face and
her hips twisted and gyrated as she writhed against the desk under Maria's
manipulations.  
  
Janet's breathing became heavier and her chest was rising and falling
dramatically. Still sucking hard and pushing her fingers in and out Maria
smiled to herself knowing that Janet's climax was approaching fast. Janet's
gyrations became more frantic, wilder, and animalistic as she panted and lost
control of her body. Janet's hands grabbed fistfuls of Maria's black hair and
she shrieked piercingly as her pussy began to spasm around Maria's fingers.  
  
With her fingers inside, Maria ceased her pumping and wriggled them around
inside the soft flesh as Janet came in Maria's mouth. Janet's clit seemed to
grow larger as her hips pushed upwards and the juice flowed out and covered
Maria's face. Maria inhaled the scent deeply and then she groaned against
Janet as they both began to relax.  
  
The two coaches composed themselves and put their panties and shorts back on.
They decided to take a shower in the girl's locker room before they left for
the day. They normally did not shower at the school but they knew everyone
else had left and that they would be alone.  
  
Anna and Lauren had remained on the practice field after practice was over.
Lauren wanted to practice her shots on goal and Anna wanted to get some more
work in as well. The girls were on the field for at least an hour before they
called it a day. They went back to the locker room to shower and dress.  
  
In the showers the two girls washed each other's bodies as they were sure they
were the only ones left in the building. They had no idea that the coaches
were still in their office. Anna loved to wash and handle the petite Lauren.
Her fingers roamed all over the pretty girl and then found their way into her
pussy and asshole. Lauren cooed as Anna fingered her with soapy fingers. Anna
paid particular attention to Lauren's nether hole and cleaned it thoroughly.
Anna then dropped to her knees and tongued Lauren's pussy.  
  
"Anna we shouldn't, not here," Lauren said with a tremble.  
  
"Nonsense we are all alone, so enjoy it," Anna replied.  
  
Anna turned Lauren toward the shower wall and Lauren placed her hands on the
wall and pushed her butt back toward Anna. Lauren felt Anna's tongue dance
over her buttocks and dart between her ass cheeks. Lauren gasped at loud as
Anna's tongue found her anus and probed at the tiny opening. Anna then began
to lick Lauren from her pussy to her asshole and back again. Lauren threw her
head back in pleasure as the talented tongue probed both her holes.  
  
Janet and Maria entered the girl's locker room and they were surprised to hear
the showers running. They thought that everyone had left. Maria decided to see
who was still here as she needed to lock up the building. Just as she
approached the showers she heard moans above the running water. Maria signaled
for Janet to join her. The two coaches peeked around the entrance to the
showers and they both had to stifle gasps of surprise.  
  
The petite Lauren had her hands against the shower wall with her butt pushed
back into Anna's face. The muscular Anna was shoving her tongue into Lauren's
nether hole and she had her fingers buried in Lauren's pussy. Janet and Maria
stared as Anna put both hands on Lauren's ass cheeks and spread them exposing
her puckered hole. Anna then probed the tight aperture with her tongue.  
  
Anna and Lauren did not know that they had an audience as Anna probed and
licked the brown puckered hole that she had just washed so carefully. Lauren
moaned her pleasure as Anna's tongue entered her rear door. Anna put her
fingers back in Lauren's pussy as she continued to tongue the firm little
ring. Lauren's anus relaxed and allowed Anna's tongue to penetrate even
deeper.  
  
"Anna I need to cum," Lauren screamed.  
  
Anna turned the petite Lauren toward her placing the girl's back against the
shower wall. Anna then plunged her tongue into Lauren's pussy and sought out
her clit. Lauren groaned as Anna located the hard little pearl and sucked it
into her mouth. Anna nibbled and sucked on the clit as she pushed her fingers
back into Lauren's pussy. Lauren could take no more and she cried out as her
body went into spasms and her juices gushed forward into Anna's mouth. Maria
and Janet ducked back around the wall and listened to the two teenage lovers.  
  
"Oh God Anna you are incredible," Lauren sighed.  
  
"I'm glad you like it my sweet now I need your tongue on my steaming pussy,"
Anna said in a firm tone.  
  
Lauren dropped to her knees and moved her mouth right onto Anna's pussy. Anna
was charged so it wouldn't take her long to cum. Maria peeked around the
corner and she witnessed Anna holding Lauren's head to her pussy as she
encouraged the petite girl to lap her pussy.  
  
Maria signaled Janet that she should leave and they heard Anna scream in
climax as they made their way out of the locker room. In the shower Anna held
tightly to Lauren's head as she came in her lover's mouth. Lauren lapped up
every drop of Anna's juices before Anna pulled her to her feet and they kissed
deeply. The two girls then finished their shower not knowing that they had
been detected.  
  
As Janet and Maria made their way to their cars Maria said, "Well that was
certainly a surprise."  
  
Janet smiled and replied, "You know I thought that Anna might be gay because
of her physique and assertiveness but I would never have guessed Lauren to be
gay."  
  
"Well you just never know. Do you think anyone looking at us would guess that
we are gay?" Maria asked.  
  
"No I don't think they would. You have a point there but once we got them in
bed," Janet replied and punched Maria teasingly.  
  
"I have to tell you something Janet," Maria said seriously and then told Janet
about the incident with Shirley, Lauren's mother.  
  
"Holy shit, Mother and daughter both gay, I wonder if they know about each
other," Janet gasped and then added with a laugh, "I wonder if they do each
other."  
  
"I don't think so in fact I am sure that they don't. Shirley told me it was
her first time with a woman and I believe her. She just came out of the
closet," Maria answered.  
  
"From the closet to the dressing room, huh," Janet giggled.  
  
"You're too much. Anyway we definitely need to cool in with our players. I
wonder who else might be gay any guesses," Maria added.  
  
"Not really but after seeing Lauren in action, my guess is that any of them
could be gay," Janet replied.  
  
"Hey any plans tonight since I having dinner with the Keslers?" Maria asked.  
  
"No not really, I might call Carol and she what she is up to. If her husband
isn't home she will probably come over," Janet responded.  
  
"Well I might give you a call depending on how the evening goes at the
Keslers. If not I'll call you tomorrow," Maria said as she got into her car.  
  
Janet waved as she got into her car and the two coaches headed home. Maria
drove home and as she did she thought about taking a long luxurious warm bath
that afternoon. As Janet drove home she thought about going shopping that
afternoon. Maybe she would check out the boutique where Shirley worked and
maybe Carol would like to go shopping with her. It could make for an
interesting afternoon.  
  
AN EVENING WITH THE KESLERS  
  
Maria arrived at the Keslers right at six as planned. She wore one of the new
backless dresses that she bought at the boutique and she went without a bra.
Maria's tits were firm enough to wear dresses without a bra but the only
downside was that her hard nipples always seemed to poke through the material.
Stephanie greeted Maria at the door and welcomed her into her home.  
  
"I thought that we would have some wine before dinner," Stephanie said as she
led Maria into the family room and then added, "You of course know my
daughters Erica and Gretchen."  
  
Maria smiled and greeted the twins and they returned the greeting. Stephanie
poured the wine and the four of then sat in the family room as they got better
acquainted on a social basis. Maria was not surprised that the twins were
served wine as it was common place in Europe and she had often had wine with
her family. The conversation flowed very smoothly and they had consumed two
bottles of wine before they finally ate dinner. Maria was glad when it was
finally time to eat as she felt herself getting a little light-headed.  
  
Dinner was excellent and Maria found herself to be very comfortable with the
Kesler family. Stephanie had insisted that Maria call her Stephie from now on.
After dinner Stephie and Maria returned to the family room and Stephie poured
them a glass of port while the twins cleaned up in the kitchen. Stephie and
Maria discussed the team and the upcoming season along with the ideas that
Stephie had for the Soccer Mom's Club. Maria told Stephie how fortunate that
she was to have the twins on the team this year and that they would probably
do very well.  
  
Maria had no idea that she and Janet had been discovered earlier that day by
her daughters. The twins had come home gushing with the news that the two
coaches were gay. Stephie wondered just how far she would be able to take it
with Maria that evening. The twins came in the family room and told their
mother that they were going up to their rooms. They said they were tired and
they would listen to music until they fell asleep. They said goodnight to
Maria and went to their rooms.  
  
'They are very pretty girls in addition to being excellent players," Maria
complimented the girl's mother.  
  
"Thank you Maria, I am very pleased with them in every way," Stephie replied.  
  
Stephie got up and got them both another glass of port and this time she sat
down next to Maria on the sofa. Maria accepted the port even though she had
already had more to drink than usual. Stephie brushed Maria's hair with the
back of her hand and then spoke to her softly.  
  
"You are very beautiful Maria, Stephie told her and then asked, "Do you find
me attractive?"  
  
"You are a very attractive woman Stephie and it is obvious where your
daughters get their good looks from," Maria answered with a smile.  
  
Stephie leaned in toward Maria and kissed her on the lips. Maria accepted the
kiss but she didn't kiss Stephie back. Maria knew that she was very vulnerable
at the moment. She had too much to drink and she was also feeling very horny.
Stephie kissed her again and this time she pushed her tongue into Maria's
mouth and stroked her breasts through the dress fabric. Maria gasped into
Stephie's mouth when she felt the hands pass over her erect nipples poking
through the dress. Stephie did not miss the hard nipples and she gently
pinched them through Maria's dress. Stephie reached for the tie behind Maria's
neck and pulled it loose. Then she lowered Maria's dress top to her lap baring
the firm breasts.  

"You have beautiful breasts Maria," Stephie complimented her as she caressed
the firm mounds.  
  
"Stephie please don't your daughters!" Maria gasped.  
  
"Oh don't worry about them they will stay in their room," Stephie assured her
as she continued to fondle Maria's firm tits.  
  
Maria knew she should stop Stephie and get up and leave but she was past any
point of reason. Stephie lowered her mouth to one of the firm tits and took
the erect nipple in her mouth. She massaged Maria's other breast as she sucked
on them moving her mouth from one to the other. Maria was hooked now and she
gave no further thought to the twins in the house.  
  
Stephie went to her knees in front of Maria and pushed her dress up letting it
gather in her lap. She then stroked Maria's creamy thighs and then moved her
hands up to the panties. Stephie hooked her fingers in the waistband of the
panties and slowly peeled them down the Spanish girl's legs. Maria raised her
hips slightly to allow the panties to clear her buttocks and Stephie smiled
her approval. Maria's legs were pushed gently apart and Stephie lowered her
mouth to the girl's pussy. Maria groaned out loud when Stephie's tongue
located her hooded clit.  
  
Maria closed her eyes as she rested her head on the back of the sofa. Stephie
inserted two fingers in Maria's twat as she nibbled on the erect clit. Maria
groaned again and then she felt her breasts being sucked. She opened her eyes
and saw the twins on either side of her, they were both completely naked.  
  
"Oh mother she has the most suckable tits!" Erica exclaimed.  
  
"Just wait until you suck her pussy," Stephie answered.  
  
Maria couldn't protest that moment if she wanted to as she was so close to an
orgasm. She allowed herself to be loved by Stephie and her two daughters.
Stephie continued to suck on her clit and finger her pussy as Gretchen and
Erica worked over Maria's tits. Maria's body began to gyrate in response to
the manipulations administered to her and she felt her orgasm building.  
  
"Oh this is going to be a big one," Maria warned and they she screamed, "Oh
I'm cumming, I'm cumming."  
  
Her body thrashed about and she pushed her hips into Stephie's face. Maria's
female juices gushed out and coated the Stephie's face. Stephie continued to
lick, suck and drink down every drop of Maria's sweet nectar. Maria stopped
moving and Stephie slowed her cunt lapping but the daughters continued sucking
Maria's tits. Finally they all stopped and they stared at the beautiful
teacher sprawled in the sofa.  
  
"I think we should take this up to my bedroom now," Stephie said.  
  
Gretchen and Erica led the way to their mother's bedroom as Stephie took
Maria's hand and showed her the way. Maria's dress slipped from her body and
she stepped out it leaving it with her panties in the family room. As if in a
trance Maria went with the family to the bedroom and she watched the beautiful
teenage twin sisters walk naked in front of her. When she entered Stephie's
bedroom she noticed the king sized bed and wondered how many females had been
in it with the family.  
  
Stephie removed her clothes and lay in the bed on her back. She patted her
pussy and Maria knew that Stephie expected her to reciprocate. Maria smiled at
the woman as she got between her legs then Maria lowered her mouth to
Stephie's pussy.  
  
"You take her pussy and I'll take her ass," Erica said to her sister.  
  
Maria then felt Gretchen slide under her and fasten her mouth on Maria's
pussy. Next Erica knelt behind Maria and played with her buttocks. Erica then
pushed Maria's butt cheeks apart and stared at the tight brown aperture. Maria
gasped as Erica probed the anus with her tongue and then stuck the tip in the
tight little ring. Maria tried to focus on Stephie's pussy but the twins had
her in an erotic state. Maria located Stephie's clit and drew it into her
mouth. Stephie cried out as Maria took the hard pearl in her teeth and gently
rolled it around.  
  
Stephie buck her hips as she cried out with the intensity of her orgasm. Just
as she came Maria held Stephie tightly to her mouth and tried to drink in all
the woman's love juices. Maria was struggling with her own climax as the twins
worked over her pussy and her asshole. Erica had her tongue in Maria's ass as
deep as it would go and Gretchen chewed lightly on Maria's clit. Maria
screamed and her body thrashed about as her climax rocked her beautiful body.
Maria collapsed into Stephie's arms and lay still as the mother and two
daughters caressed her body.  
  
Once Stephie and Maria recovered sufficiently from their orgasms, Stephie had
her daughters Erica and Gretchen lay next to each other on the bed. Then Maria
knelt between Erica's legs and lowered her mouth to the tasty teenage pussy.
Stephie did the same with Gretchen and the two adults knelt side by side as
they ate the twins' pussies. The pussy eating skills of Stephie and Maria were
just too much for the young girls and they were soon thrashing and groaning on
the bed as Stephie and Maria worked over their young energetic pussies. The
girls pushed their hips up toward the women trying to get the tongues even
deeper into their cunts. Almost simultaneously the two teenagers screamed with
the intensity of their orgasms. Stephie and Maria continued to lick their
creaming pussies and nibble on their aroused clits as they climaxed wildly. As
the girls calmed a little Stephie and Maria kissed and licked around their
pussies and inner thighs. The girls shivered with delight as the tongues
tickled them.  
  
Stephie got off the bed and then returned with two strap-on dildos and she
told her daughters that she wanted them to fuck her and Maria with the fake
cocks. Stephie and Maria then helped the teenagers put on the strap-on dildo
and harness. The two girls giggled as they looked at each other as the fake
cocks bobbed in front of them.  
  
"You have a dick," Gretchen giggled.  
  
"You do too," laughed Erica as she reached over and stroked Gretchen's rubber
cock.  
  
Stephie and Maria lay on their backs side by side and Stephie urged the young
girls to fuck them. Erica moved between Maria's legs and Gretchen got between
Stephie's legs. The women helped the girls guide the fake cocks into their
pussies and began moving their hips up to meet the teenager's experienced
thrusts. Erica and Gretchen knew what they were doing and they soon had
established a rhythm fucking the older women. The girls soon felt the nubs on
the dildos rubbing against their own clits and they realized that they too
would experience yet another orgasm. It was so exciting for the young girls to
be fucking the adult women that they leaned over to suck on the women's tits.
Stephie and Maria in turn fondled the teenager's tits and tweaked their
nipples and rolled them in their fingertips.  
  
The entire room smelled of sex from the four dripping pussies. The four of
them were racing toward another string of orgasms as the teenagers fucked hard
and fast. Erica and Gretchen were rewarded for their enthusiastic efforts as
the dildo nubs rubbed their clits and kept them in a constant state of
arousal. The two sisters worked their hips so that they could receive as much
pleasure as they were giving. Stephie and Maria were beyond themselves with
lust and they felt their intense orgasms building in their wombs. Stephie and
Maria screamed with joy as their orgasms took over their bodies. They humped
quickly and then collapsed back on the bed as the two sisters plowed their
pussies with the fake cocks.  
  
Erica and Gretchen removed the rubber dicks from the women's pussies and
looked at the dildos glistening with Stephie's and Maria's juices. As if it
were the natural thing in the world Erica and Gretchen moved into a 69
position and licked the female nectar off the two fake cocks. Stephie and
Maria watched them do this and marveled at the teenager's initiative. The two
girls sucked the artificial cocks into their mouths and made a game out of how
deep they could take them. After they licked the dildos dry of Stephie and
Maria cunt juice the two teenagers sat up and blushed slightly as they
realized what they had just done.  
  
"Maria have you ever been fucked in the ass," Stephie inquired.  
  
"Yes many times but only with dildos. I have also experimented with plugs and
beads," the pretty Spaniard admitted much to the delight of Stephie and her
daughters.  
  
"Wonderful let me show you what is next," Stephie told them.  
  
Stephie and Maria as lay on their sides facing one another and worked the
double dildo into their pussies as they had their assholes greased up by the
twins. The two teenagers watched in awe as the entire shaft at each end
disappeared into the women's pussies.  
  
"Now Gretchen and Erica we want you to fuck us in the ass with your cocks,"
Stephie directed.  
  
The two young girls were so excited they couldn't believe their good fortune
that Maria actually wanted a big rubber cocks in her ass. Tentatively the two
girls got behind Stephie and Maria and tenderly pushed the fake cocks into the
women's assholes. Stephie and Maria reached behind them and guided the dildos
into their assholes and encouraged the girls to fuck them hard and quick.
Erica moved closer to her mother as the cock slid into her ass and Stephie
reached behind her and pulled Erica by her buttocks tightly against her.
Erica's pubes pressed into Stephie's ass as the fake dick went all the way up
her rectum. Erica could once again felt the nub on the dildo work its magic on
her clit and she began to thrust her hips into her mother as she fucked her
ass. Erica reached around and slid her hand between Maria and her mother and
cupped her tits.  
  
Almost the same scene was repeated between Gretchen and Maria and the two
teenagers were now fucking their lover's asses with the same enthusiasm as
they had fucked their pussies earlier. The dildo nubs were doing their job as
Erica and Gretchen rapidly fucked the two shapely asses of Stephie and Maria.
Erica was the first to cum and she shuddered and held her mother tightly as
she screamed out loud in ecstasy. Gretchen was right behind her and she buried
her head in Maria shoulder to muffle her own screams as her body shook with
the intensity of her orgasm. Stephie and Maria went right on fucking each
other with the double dildo until they too had mind shattering orgasms. The
two women held onto the cute shapely bottoms of the teenagers as they thrashed
their hips together, shuddered, stiffened and coated the double dildo with
their female juices.  
  
"Oh my God that was fantastic," cried Maria.  
  
"Oh you girls are so incredibly sexy," Stephie gasped.  
  
The four of them lay still in the bed for awhile still coupled together with
the fake cocks. Stephie told her daughters to move first and slowly pull out
of her and Maria's ass. Erica and Gretchen eased the strap-on cocks out of the
women's asses and looked at them in disbelief. It was still hard to imagine
those big rubber cocks stuffed up Stephie's and Maria's asses. Stephie and
Maria then moved apart and removed the double dildo from their pussies.
Stephie gathered up the fake cocks and took them to be washed thoroughly. As
Stephie washed the dildo's Maria lay on her back between the two teenagers.
Gretchen and Erica played with Maria tits as Maria diddled each girl's tight
little pussy.  
  
"Maria you will be staying the night won't you?" Stephie asked with a smile.  
  
Maria just nodded her head in agreement as she couldn't move at that point if
she wanted to. Stephie chased her daughters back to their room and then she
crawled in bed with Maria.  
  
"We will fuck them in the morning but right now I think we should get some
sleep," Stephie said as she cuddled up to Maria.  
  
Maria rolled to her side and pushed her ass back into Stephie's body.
Stephie's hand draped over Maria and cupped one of her breasts. They fell
sleep in that position and slept soundly through the night.  
  
SUNDAY A DAY OF ADMISSION AND DISCOVERY  
  
Maria woke up Sunday morning with a wonderful sensation in her pussy. It was
no wonder as Stephie had moved between her legs and was tenderly licking the
Spanish girl's quim. Maria stroked Stephie's hair and raised her hips
slightly.  
  
"Oh good you're wake, let's do each other," Stephie said as she moved to a 69
position.  
  
Maria did not hesitate and she pulled the woman's pussy to her face and buried
her tongue in the blond snatch. The two of them made tender female love to one
another until they both came almost simultaneously. They held onto each others
ass as they released their nectar into each other's mouth.  
  
"Oh what a glorious way to start the day!" Stephie exclaimed.  
  
"I'll say. Thanks for the wakeup call," Maria laughed.  
  
"Good morning mother, good morning Maria," Erica said as the twins walked into
their mother's bedroom.  
  
"Sleep well?" mocked Gretchen.  
  
Maria then noticed they were carrying the strap-on cocks and harnesses with
them when Erica said, "Our turn now."  
  
The twins handed the strap-on cocks to their mother and Maria and then hopped
in bed. Gretchen and Erica lay on their backs side by side on their mother's
bed as Stephie and Maria got up and put on the dildo harnesses. Then they
snapped the fake cocks into place and climbed on the bed between the two
teenage sisters. Stephie and Maria ran the mushroom heads of the fake cocks
along the girl's tiny slits and their hooded clits. They then began to ease
the cock tips between the slick lips of the girl's pussies until they felt the
slight resistance. Maria and Stephie looked at each other and on a nod from
each other they entered the girls quickly. Gretchen and Erica each gave a
startled cry and a brief shriek of pain as the women entered the girls.  
  
Gretchen and Erica felt the fake cocks plunge into their wombs simultaneously.
Gretchen and Erica tensed for the first several minutes and then they pushed
back against the women fucking them. The two teenagers humped up against the
mature women until the full nine inches of each dildo were going deep inside
them with each thrust. Gretchen and Erica wrapped their legs around their
lover's torsos and locked their ankles together behind the women's back just
above their buttocks. Erica and Gretchen used their legs for leverage and
pulled themselves onto the fake cocks buried deep in their pussies.  
  
Stephie and Maria realized that the twins were going to cum as they
frantically rubbed their clits up and down the rubber shafts of the strap-on
cocks. Stephie and Maria felt the nubs of the dildo scrape against their own
clits and they too knew that they were close to another mind blowing orgasm.
The bedroom was filled with screams, moans and groans of ecstasy as the two
girls and two women climaxed with intense orgasms. The teenagers held the
women tightly as they rode the fake cocks until their young bodies shuddered
and then went limp as they were drained of all energy. The rubber cocks were
coated with female juices from both ends as Stephie and Maria gently lowered
their bodies to the young girls.  
  
"Oh thank you, thank you! I love it when you fuck me mother," cried Gretchen
as she held tightly to Stephie.  
  
"It was wonderful better than I had ever hoped for Maria," sighed Erica as she
stroked Maria's hair and kissed her face.  
  
Stephie and Maria stood up and removed the strap-on dildos from their bodies.
Maria looked at the two beautiful twins sprawled on the bed and she still had
a difficult time believing what had transpired over the past twelve plus
hours.  
  
"Come now let's all get cleaned up for breakfast," Stephie directed.  
  
Stephie showered first and then Maria. Stephie left a robe for Maria to wear
since her clothes were still in the family room. Maria joined the mother and
daughters in the breakfast room and she noticed that they were all wearing
bathrobes. Stephie served a continental style breakfast for everyone and then
they sat around talking as they sipped on their coffee.  
  
Stephie told Maria how she and her daughters became lovers and how much they
enjoyed having others join them. She also told Maria about Vicki and how she
made love to a woman the first time. Then the twins told Maria about Vicki's
daughter Trudy and how they seduced her and about how much she loved it.  
  
"I'm sure that Vicki and Trudy do not know about each other's experience,"
Stephie added.  
  
"How about you Maria? We know that you and Janet are lovers anyone else?"
Stephie asked.  
  
Maria looked shocked and asked, "How do you know about Janet?"  
  
"We heard you two yesterday after practice in the coach's office," the twins
replied and giggled, "Busted!"  
  
Maria blushed and admitted it then she told the family about Carol and
Shirley. Also she told them about Lauren and Anna in the showers yesterday.
The family listened intently as Maria filled in the details of each encounter.  
  
"Wow Carol Graham, Marcia's mother, Marcia is so hot I wonder if she likes
girls too," Erica said excitedly.  
  
"I don't think so I know she has been dating guys and they are falling all
over her," Gretchen added.  
  
"Carol is still married so she must be bi-sexual and it sounds like she is
quite a lover," Stephie remarked.  
  
"You know Maria I think it is time to have a Soccer Moms Club meeting with the
two coaches. Let's set it for a Saturday evening after practice at my home. So
it will be you, me, Janet, Vicki, Shirley and Carol. We should have a very
interesting meeting," Stephie stated.  
  
"I'll talk Trudy into having us over to her home while the meeting is going on
here and I'll invite Lauren and Anna as well," Erica added.  
  
"All this talk is getting me worked up again. I am going in the Jacuzzi.
Please join us Maria," Stephie sighed.  
  
"Obviously I don't have a suit to wear," Maria laughed.  
  
"Oh we don't wear suits here. Our yard is totally private and the girls and I
are always naked when we use the pool or Jacuzzi," Stephie replied.  
  
The four of them went outside on the pool deck and dropped their robes. Maria
once again took in the beauty of the twins and their mother as they entered
the Jacuzzi. Maria joined them and the bubbling water felt wonderful on her
body. The four of them talked as their bodies soaked and then the twins began
to get frisky. The twins moved next to Maria, sat on either side of her and
played with her firm tits and rock hard nipples. The soon had Maria in a
frenzy and they had her stand up as they went to her ass and pussy again. This
time it was Gretchen who tongued Maria's back hole while Erica ate the coach's
pussy.  
  
"Come girls let's take this back inside," Stephie told her daughters.  
  
The four of them got out of the hot tub and dried off. They donned their terry
robes and then made their way back to Stephie's bedroom. Once in the bedroom
Erica lay on her back and shoved one end of a double dildo into her pussy. She
then beckoned Maria to put the other end in her pussy so that they could fuck
together. Maria moved into position and slid the fake cock into her snatch.
Maria and Erica were now joined with the double cock. Maria felt another dildo
slide into her ass and she realized that it too was a double dildo and that
Gretchen had the other end in her pussy. The twins began to double fuck Maria
with the two double headed cocks as they fucked their own pussies.  
  
Not to be left out Stephie positioned herself in front of Maria so that she
could eat Stephie's pussy. Maria was overcome with lust as she plunged her
tongue deep into Stephie's quim. The four of them continued their marathon sex
until they had all cum several times. They changed position and roles for the
rest of the morning and it was about 2:00 PM when Maria finally got dressed
and dragged her aching body out of the house. Stephie and her daughters were
drained but ecstatic that Maria had joined their circle.  
  
Maria called Janet on her way home and told her that she had to meet with her
for a few minutes. Janet told her to come over as she was just chilling out at
home. Janet did not get together with Carol or Shirley as she thought she
might. Carol couldn't get away and the mall was too crowded yesterday to
approach Shirley. So Janet was happy that Maria had called.  

Maria arrived at Janet's shortly after she called and when she entered Janet's
home she blurted out, "Do I have something to tell you."  
  
Maria flopped down on Janet's sofa and sighed. Janet said to her, "You look
exhausted but your body is glowing as if you have been fucking your brains
out."  
  
"God have I ever and not in my wildest imagination would I have ever thought
it would happen with Stephanie Kesler and her daughters," Maria said with a
gasp.  
  
"Oh my God, I have to hear all about it," Janet squealed as she joined Maria
on the sofa.  
  
Maria went through the entire experience with the Keslers covering every
detail she could remember. Then Maria told Janet about the exchange of
information that they knew about the two of them and Carol. Maria shared with
Janet what the Keslers told her about Vicki and Trudy also that she told the
Keslers about Shirley, Lauren and Anna.  
  
"Oh my God Maria what if it turns out that all the team is gay and most of the
mothers are gay or bi-sexual?" Janet challenged.  
  
"Well then we are in for one hell of a season," Maria laughed.  
  
"Oh Janet one more thing we are going to have a meeting in two weeks at
Stephanie Kesler's house. It will be the two of us, Stephie, Carol, Vicki and
Shirley," Maria added.  
  
"What can we expect to happen at that meeting," Janet asked.  
  
"Stephie wants to go over the Soccer Moms Club's plans and objectives. After
that it is whatever happens, it could turn into a small orgy," Maria answered
and giggled at the thought of an orgy.  
  
"Should be interesting," Janet quipped and then asked, "How about a glass of
wine?"  
  
"Yes please that would be great," Maria replied.  
  
Janet opened a bottle of wine and brought the bottle and two glasses into her
family room. Janet poured the wine and the two coaches toasted each other.
They sat around talking and finished the bottle of wine. Maria then said she
had to go that she was dead tired.  
  
"Oh I was hoping that you could stay awhile," Janet said with a disappointed
look on her face.  
  
Maria knew that Janet wanted to make love so she smiled and said, "Just for a
little longer then I do have to go," then she leaned over and kissed Janet.  
  
"Should we go upstairs?" Janet asked hopefully.  
  
"Sure but my pussy and ass are worn out so let's go easy. I will be happy to
make love to you though," Maria agreed.  
  
The two pretty women went up to Janet's bedroom and took off all their
clothes. They climbed in bed and Janet got on her back, spread her legs and
welcomed Maria's mouth on her body. Maria's lips locked around one of her
nipples and sucked deeply. Her hands cupped the cheeks of Janet's shapely ass
and her youthful fingers softly massaged Janet's hot skin as she sucked long
on Janet's nipple. Maria would leave one nipple wet and chilled by the air as
she moved to the opposite one and sucked again driving Janet wild.  
  
Throwing her head back Janet opened her mouth as if to moan but no sound came
out. Maria continued to play with Janet's breasts as her teeth scraped against
the nipples and pinched them while her hands still dug into Janet's firm ass.
Janet reached up and grabbed onto the headboard of the bed to support her body
as she pushed her chest closer to Maria's face. Maria grunted around Janet's
breast and she sucked even more into her mouth. Maria not only sucked on the
nipple but on the whole area around it as if she were trying to devour Janet.  
  
Janet's cunt was dripping wet and she could feel her juices flowing down her
thighs as she ground her hips against her lover. The fire in Janet's nipples
spread through her chest and belly to her pussy and ignited so much passion
inside her body she felt as if she may explode at any minute. Still holding
tightly to the headboard Janet moved her hips up Maria's body so that she
could place her pussy in front of the girl's mouth. Maria reluctantly released
her mouth hold on Janet's tits as the blonde moved her pussy into place.  
  
With a moan of pleasure Maria stretched and kissed Janet's pussy. Her warm
lips made the blonde shiver as they caressed her lips and one of her hands
caressed Janet's ass. As she breathed on Janet's pussy the warm breath made
her tingle. Janet moaned out loud unable to control her own gyrations as Maria
moved closer and closer to her pussy.  
  
At the first touch of her tongue Janet nearly jumped out of her skin. Janet
had experienced this many times before but there was something very special
and very erotic with this beautiful Spaniard. She moaned loudly again as
Maria's tongue timidly lapped at her cunt. Maria shifted underneath Janet for
a better grip on her ass as her hot tongue snaked out again and she tightened
the grip on Janet's ass. Maria brought Janet's pussy closer to her face
lapping up the female juices.  
  
Janet moved her hips, gyrated, thrust, and whimpered as Maria began to lick
her more insistently. Maria's lips parted and she sucked on Janet's skin,
taking parts of her into her mouth, sucking softly and then diving back inside
Janet's pussy with her tongue. Maria was so experienced and Janet cried out as
Maria's lips found her clit.  
  
With just the slightest brushes of Maria's tongue and lips against her
sensitive clit Janet felt her body go into convulsions. She felt the juices
flow out of her body and she cried out as her buttocks tensed in Maria's hands
and she drove my pussy into her eager young girl's face. The orgasm rocked
Janet's body as her pussy pulsed and her muscles tensed and she came gushing
onto Maria's face.  
  
"Maria!" Janet cried out. "Maria, don't stop, Oh God don't stop!"  
  
Maria plunged her tongue deep inside Janet drinking her juices as they poured
out of her body. Each lap of the young girl's long tongue sent more shivers
through Janet's body, tingles shot up her spine, down through her legs, around
her arms and through her pussy. As it finally it ceased and Janet's body
relaxed there were still slight tremors of aftershock shaking her. Maria
continued to lick Janet tenderly savoring the experience of girl on girl sex.
Maria's silky tongue ran up and down Janet's widespread slit as she remained
motionless. With a reluctant groan from Janet Maria shifted her body off of
her and lay down on the bed next to her. Taking Maria in her arms Janet pulled
the naked body towards hers. Their skin sticky with sweat and cum added to the
eroticism of the moment as they held one another.  
  
"Maria that was wonderful thank you so much, I know you were tired. You are
such a dear to satisfy me," Janet sighed and then asked, "Are you sure that
you don't want me to do you?"  
  
"No Janet I'm fine the Keslers really did a job on me. Thanks for asking
though but I really need to get home and work on some stuff," Maria replied
with a loving smile.  
  
Maria got dressed, kissed Janet goodbye and headed home. She really did have
some things to get ready for Monday's soccer practice. She had two more weeks
to get the team ready for the season opener and there was still a lot to
cover.  
  
THE NAME OF THE GAME IS PREPARATION  
  
The following week Maria continued to work on the team's conditioning and
fundamentals. She and Janet could see the girl's stamina increasing and their
confidence growing. The girls were starting to think and act like a soccer
team.  
  
The second week Maria introduced a number of offensive plays and defensive
strategies. She saved the best for last and that Friday and Saturday she held
closed practices. Maria unveiled the strategy to be used in their season
opener with Lincoln South. At first the team and Janet didn't really like the
game plan but the more they thought about it and practiced it the more the
team accepted it.  
  
At the conclusion of Saturday's practice the team was well versed in the game
plan to be used against Lincoln South. The team was sworn to secrecy and they
were to tell no one about the game plan, not their classmates, friends or
family. The team showered, dressed and headed home. On Monday they would have
a light practice and Tuesday was the season opener.  
  
Maria and Janet went to their homes to shower, dress and get ready for the
meeting at Stephanie Kesler's house. She and Janet would drive over together.
Stephie had told Maria that the other mothers had agreed to be there and that
the twins would be at Trudy's house for a sleep over. Anna and Lauren would
also be joining the twins at Trudy's house although they didn't know at that
time that they too would be sleeping over.  
  
NEXT CHAPTER – THE SEASON  
  
The next chapter will look in on the Soccer Moms Club meeting and the
daughter's planned sleep over. Then the season will begin against the very
tough Lincoln Central.




        Lesbian Soccer Moms Ch. 04


THE SEASON  
  
INTRODUCTION  
  
This chapter launches the soccer season for the Ridgeway Lady Cougars.
Stephanie hosts a Soccer Moms Club meeting that ends up with the mothers and
coaches becoming even closer. A slumber party at Trudy's house reveals a
number of secrets and has some interesting developments.  
  
THE START OF A REVEALING WEEKEND  
  
Right after soccer practice on Friday Anna drove Lauren home and stayed with
her that afternoon into the evening. Anna and Lauren made love to each other
in many different ways and then rested in Lauren's bed. Anna was still wearing
the strap-on dildo that she used to fuck Lauren earlier. Anna lay on her back
and stroked the fake dick.  
  
"How do you like my big cock?" she teased Lauren.  
  
"Very impressive but you need to put it away. My mother will be home soon and
I don't want her to find out about us," Lauren replied.  
  
"She already knows she spied on us last time I fucked you," Anna told her with
a cocky laugh.  
  
"No way, she does not know, how could she?" asked a stunned Lauren.  
  
"She stuck her head in last time and I saw her. Not only that, but when you
dozed off I went down to her room and I caught her in bed playing with her
pussy," Anna added.  
  
"My God, what did you do when you saw her? Did she see you too?" Lauren
gasped.  
  
"Yes she saw me and since I was still wearing the strap-on I went in her room
and fucked her," Anna said with a smirk on her face.  
  
"You fucked my mother, no way, she wouldn't do that, she' not into girls,"
Lauren stammered.  
  
"Well I did and I will prove it to you. In fact I will just stay right here
and I will fuck her when she comes home tonight," Anna stated.  
  
Lauren was lost for words. She didn't really want Anna in the house when her
mother arrived home. But if it was true and Anna had fucked her what
difference would it make. Lauren struggled with her thoughts and wondered what
would happen if she allowed Anna to stay. Actually Anna would stay if she
wanted to and Lauren really couldn't do anything about it.  
  
"I tell you what," Anna directed, "I will hide when your mother comes home and
if she peeks in your room to spy on us then you will know for sure and then I
will fuck her right in front of you on your bed."  
  
Just the thought of seeing her mother get fucked by Anna sent chills through
Lauren's body and she felt her loins stir again. Lauren subconsciously moved
her fingers to her pussy and rubbed her clit. Anna smiled at her and then
thought to herself that it could turn out to be quite an evening. Anna reached
over and guided the petite Lauren so that she sat on the fake cock. Lauren
lowered herself on Anna's cock and began to bounce up and down. Lauren was
close to another orgasm when they heard Shirley come home. Lauren scrambled
off Anna's cock and lay flat in bed as Anna jumped up and hid as planned.  
  
Shirley arrived home at about 7:00 PM and she saw Anna's car parked in the
street. She felt a twinge go through her body as she remembered the last time
Anna was at the house. Shirley thought about watching Anna fuck her daughter
and then about Anna coming into her bedroom and fucking her too. Shirley
decided to be quiet again as she entered the house in hopes of catching the
girls making love to each other.  
  
Shirley entered her home and quietly made her way up to her daughter's room.
The door was cracked open slightly and Shirley peeked in pushing the door open
a little wider. Her daughter Lauren was naked on her bed and she was playing
with her cute pussy but Anna was not in the room. Shirley was a little
disappointed that she couldn't see Anna and she pushed the door open a little
wider. Anna had hid down the hall and now she approached Shirley from behind.  
  
"Got you," Anna said as she grabbed Shirley from behind.  
  
Anna easily lifted up Shirley and walked in the bedroom with her. "Look what I
found," Anna laughed as she spoke to Lauren.  
  
"Anna please let me go," Shirley begged embarrassingly.  
  
"Sure I'll let you go so that you can get undressed and join us. There is no
reason to watch when you can join in and you know you want to," Anna asserted.  
  
"No Anna please I can't do that again," Shirley said fearfully as she realized
for the first time that Anna was naked and wearing the strap-on.  
  
Lauren heard her mother loud and clear when she said again. So Anna was right
Lauren thought to herself, Anna did fuck her. Lauren watched as her mother was
undressed by Anna right in front of her. Lauren's mother was as helpless as
Lauren was in Anna's presence.  
  
Shirley was stripped of her clothes and made to kneel on her daughter's bed
her face was flushed with embarrassment and excitement. As much as Shirley was
humiliated she was getting turned on as her true inner feelings took over.
Shirley got on all fours as she was directed and then she looked back at Anna
who knelt behind her with the big rubber cock bobbing in front of her. Anna
got behind Shirley to fuck her doggy style and slid the fake hard cock into
her pussy. Shirley gasped as the phallus entered her dripping wet pussy. Anna
then began to fuck her with long steady strokes.  
  
Shirley felt her orgasm build quickly and then travel through her body. She
cried out in climax and her ass danced around as she fucked herself on Anna's
cock. Lauren watched in amazement at her mother's slutty behavior.  
  
"Oh yes oh, fuck me Anna," Shirley cried out.  
  
Anna smiled at the woman's submissiveness as she fucked her harder and harder.
Then Anna thought it was time to include Lauren. Anna stroked and played with
Shirley's ass and tickled her nether hole with a fingertip.  
  
"Lauren spread yourself in front of your mother and let her eat your delicious
pussy," Anna directed the action.  
  
Lauren obeyed Anna as she always did plus she still needed to cum again since
she and Anna were interrupted earlier. Lauren got in front of her mother and
slid down with her legs open putting her very cute pussy on display.  
  
"Come on Shirley give your daughter some of your magic. Look at that
delectable pussy you know you want to put your tongue in there," Anna urged.  
  
All of a sudden it wasn't her daughter's pussy anymore. It was just a
beautiful teenage pussy that desired to be licked and eaten. Shirley looked at
her daughter's gorgeous form sprawled on the bed and buried her face in the
teenage mound. Shirley shoved her tongue deep into her daughter's womb causing
her daughter to gasp. Lauren loved to have her pussy eaten.  
  
As Shirley was fucked and ate her daughter's pussy, Anna played with her ass.
Shirley's pussy was dripping wet and Anna used the natural lubrication to
finger the tight aperture. At first Shirley was apprehensive and then it
started to turn her on.  
  
"Oh yes!" Lauren exclaimed and she trembled with excitement as her mother's
tongue found her clit.  
  
Anna continued to fuck Shirley and play with her ass but then she stopped
briefly. Anna pulled out of her and Shirley felt a huge void in her pussy as
the cool air temporarily filled her hole.  
  
"Stay right there," Anna told her as she left the bed and got something from
her bag.  
  
When she returned she knelt behind Shirley and once again shoved the big fake
dick into her pussy. She started to play with Shirley's bum again and squirted
some type of lotion in the crack of her ass. Anna massaged the lotion into
Shirley's asshole and began to finger her once again. The lotion made Shirley
very slick and Anna's finger slid easily in and out of the anus.  
  
Lauren was holding onto her mother's head keeping it in her snatch as she
watched Anna. She yelled to Anna, "Fuck her in the ass. I want to see you fuck
her ass."  
  
Lauren was overcome with lust and now she wanted to see her mother take the
big cock in her ass just as Anna had done to her so many times. Shirley
couldn't believe her ears when she heard her daughter tell Anna to fuck her
ass.  
  
"Yeah, do you want it in your ass Shirley?" she heard Anna ask as she felt the
rubber cock press harder against her virgin ass hole.  
  
"No please no!" Shirley cried, shaking her head from side to side with her
face still pressing against Lauren's quim. "I've never done that, it's too
big. You'll ruin me."  
  
"Don't be silly she's not going to ruin you. If I can take it you certainly
can take it in your ass. You just need to be broken in," Lauren said to her
mother.  
  
Anna spread plenty of lotion on the fake cock and then covered it with her
saliva making it very slick. Then with one steady motion she plunged the cock
into Shirley's asshole. The cock was gigantic, long and wide and Shirley
screamed as Anna began to work the dildo into the woman's poor tight ass.
Shirley actually felt her stomach cramp around the fake cock. As Anna stirred
Shirley's insides it burned when the ass muscles convulsed around the
thickness. Shaking and sobbing with painful ecstasy, Shirley fell forward onto
Lauren. With her powerful grip Anna kept Shirley's ass high in the air as it
was plundered with the huge phallus.  
  
Shirley screamed into her daughter's pussy as it felt like a hot thick poker
had just been rammed into her ass. Tears filled Shirley's eyes as her violated
asshole spread to accommodate Anna's thick cock. Shirley tried to break loose
and get away but she was held securely in place by Lauren and Anna. Lauren
held her mother by the ears and Anna held her by the hips. Shirley's face was
buried in her daughter's womb.  
  
Shirley cried out loud only to have the sound muffled by Lauren's cunt as the
complete length filled her ass. Anna flexed the cock deep within Shirley's
bowels as the searing pain continued. Anna reached one hand under Lauren's
mother and teased a nipple. Then Anna moved her other hand down and rubbed
softly against Shirley's clit. Shirley's body responded to the stimulus and
her stomach convulsed with mixed signals.  
  
The intrusion in her ass didn't feel quite as bad now as Anna's fingers
continued to tease Shirley's clit. She felt Anna move inside her ass now and
Shirley tried to relax her ass muscles. Her body was working back and forth on
Anna's cock now and Shirley was amazed at the feeling of the cock in her ass.
Shirley's clit was buzzing and the fullness in her ass just seemed to excite
her pussy even more.  
  
Anna started hammering into Shirley's ass now. Anna's fingers were still busy
on the clit but now she had two fingers drilling in Shirley's pussy as the
others fluttered around the clit. Shirley's whole body was aflame as she could
feel the fingers pressing against the thin membrane separating her ass from
her pussy. Shirley could feel the hard fake cock sliding in her and the
pressure of the fingers through the membrane.  
  
Lauren yelled out, "Oh yeah, fuck her, fuck my mother's ass, fuck it good!"  
  
Shirley didn't need Anna's powerful grip or Lauren's holding onto her ears
anymore. Shirley's entire body of its own accord was fucking back at Anna.
Shirley could feel an enormous orgasm building with in her and her pussy was
swollen to new proportions.  
  
"Oh God," Shirley thought to herself, "I'm going to cum again, Oh God!"  
  
Anna continued plowing into Shirley. Anna worked her fingers faster inside
Shirley as the fake cock was rammed hard into her ass. Shirley sucked her
daughter's twat like a mad woman. Shirley could taste Lauren's wetness and the
air was filled with the smell of pussy juices throughout room.  
  
Shirley felt her pussy spasm suddenly and then her whole body went rigid. She
screamed into her daughter's mound and sucked on her clit. Shirley could taste
the sweet juices as she sucked hard and bit on Lauren's clit. All three of
them shuddered hard as every muscle tensed and then relaxed. Shirley felt a
hot explosion as her body was overcome with the most violent orgasm she had
ever had. Shirley was still sucking hard on Lauren's pussy trying to milk
every last drop of cunt juice out of her. Shirley felt Anna's strap-on cock
slowly back out making an audible popping sound. Shirley's ass was still high
in the air and her thighs ached as Anna lovingly caressed the shapely ass
cheeks.  
  
The three of them collapsed on the bed totally drained from the intense fuck
session. As they recovered Shirley felt like she had reached an all time low.
Although she handled the ass fucking she was humiliated and she felt totally
dominated. It was a strange feeling to be satiated and ashamed at the same
time.  
  
Shirley lay on her back as she was caressed by her daughter and Anna. The two
teenagers were not done with the mother and they put Shirley through several
more couplings and compilations before the evening was over. Anna straddled
Shirley's face and lowered her pussy to the mature woman. As Shirley ate
Anna's pussy, Lauren put on the strap-on and fucked her mother's pussy. Later
Anna showed Shirley how to wear the strap-on and Shirley then fucked Anna's
pussy. Lauren then had her mother fuck her pussy too. Shirley learned how the
back end of the fake cock rubbed against her own clit as she fucked the two
teenagers.  
  
Anna finally showered, dressed and left but she left the strap-on with Lauren
and her mother. Shirley stayed in her daughter's room that night and they fell
asleep in each other's arms.  
  
SOCCER MOMS AND COACHES MEET  
  
On Saturday evening Janet and Maria arrived at Stephanie's home. The other
soccer moms Vicki, Shirley, and Carol had already arrived. Stephanie served
wine and appetizers and they all sat around and chatted about the upcoming
season. Plans were made and assignments were given out. Vicki and Shirley were
curious as to why Carol had volunteered to be a soccer mom since her daughter
Marcia was a cheerleader.  
  
"Well as I understand it Carol joined us so that she would have an excuse to
be with Janet and Maria," Stephie offered.  
  
Carol blushed at the implication and then Stephie asked, "Isn't that correct
Carol? Isn't it because you like they way they fuck you?"  
  
The whole room was quiet and the ladies stared at Carol waiting for her
reaction. Carol just sat quietly and turned beet red. Janet and Maria were
caught off guard but they were not really surprised by Stephie's actions.  
  
"Oh come on now girls we are all out of the closet. Let's see I know Janet and
Maria are lovers and that they included Carol at times. Shirley you have made
it with Maria at the boutique. Vicki and I have made love in my home and the
same night her daughter Trudy made it with my daughters. Also Maria and I made
love here and my twin daughters joined in," Stephie revealed all she knew and
then asked, "Does anyone have anything to add to that?"  
  
"I think that about covers it for me," Maria replied but I do know that Anna
and Lauren made it together in the showers."  
  
Shirley surprised herself by sharing as she added, "Lauren and Marcia have
made love in my house. Also Anna and Lauren are lovers and last night they
included me."  
  
Shirley was embarrassed by her admission but at the same time she was relieved
that she had shared it with the others. Carol and Vicki were stunned as this
was the first time they heard about their daughters and they would have never
suspected them.  
  
"Are you sure about Marcia?" Carol asked.  
  
"Oh yes the time she stayed over at our house on Friday and Saturday, they
made love both days. I saw them myself," Shirley confirmed.  
  
Carol then knew it was the same nights that she spent with Janet and then with
Janet and Maria. Carol tried to picture the two beautiful teenagers naked
together and she felt a stirring in her loins.  
  
"Stephie are you really sure about my daughter Wendy?" Vicki asked shyly.  
  
"Oh yes quite sure, my daughters never lie about things like this. They told
me everything and your daughter became quite fond of female sex particularly
with the sex toys. Erica and Ingrid actually double fucked her daughter and
she loved it," Stephie explicitly replied.  
  
Vicki still had a difficult time believing that her daughter had experienced
lesbian love and on the very same night that Stephie seduced her. Vicki
visualized her pretty daughter with the beautiful twins and the image of Trudy
being doubled fucked haunted her. Vicki was actually turned on by the thought.
Then she thought about the sleep over that Trudy was hosting tonight and it
included all the daughters that they had just discussed.  
  
"Well we have finished our business for the evening, should we have some fun
now?" Stephie asked.  
  
The women looked at Stephie as they thought they knew what was on her mind but
nobody moved. Then Maria spoke up, "Sure why not, there are no secrets here."  
  
"That's the spirit. Now let's first get together with someone that we haven't
had sex with. Maria why don't you and Janet get better acquainted with Vicki.
Then Carol, Shirley and I will get to know each other better," Stephie
directed and then added, "Now let's take our clothes off for starters."  
  
All six of the women undressed and then stood naked looking at each other and
taking in each other's beauty and unique attributes. Vicki was a beautiful
woman with long straight blond hair, small pert like tits, gorgeous legs and a
perfectly round bubble butt. Her body was golden tan. Shirley was a very
pretty brunette with medium firm breasts, shapely hips and ass. Maria had more
the Latin look, dark hair and eyes, olive skin and a very shapely 36-22-36
body. Carol was a Natalie Wood like brunette. All of them kept their pussy
hair well trimmed into cute little tufts and they were all very fit from hours
of fitness training.  
  
Stephie and Carol approached Shirley and told her not to be so shy. Maria and
Janet led Vicki over to one of the sofas and sat down on the edge of it on
either side of Vicki. Stephie and Carol led Shirley over to the other sofa and
they sat facing Janet, Vicki and Maria. Stephie and Carol sat close to Shirley
so that their bodies were touching. Maria and Janet did the same with Vicki.  
  
"This is so hot," said Janet as she and Maria moved their hands over Vicki's
body.  
  
"So have you experimented with toys or dildos yet?" asked Stephie. Then she
and Carol moved even closer to Shirley and began to move their hands over her
breasts and thighs.  
  
"Yes last night the girls introduced me to a strap-on cock," Shirley replied
nervously but turned on by the caressing of her body.  
  
"Well we have some surprises for you later but first things first," said
Stephie as she and Carol gently pushed Shirley back on the sofa.  
  
Janet and Maria also pushed Vicki back on the other sofa and Janet got between
Vicki's legs as Maria mounted Vicki's face. Janet wasted no time in cupping
Vicki's hot ass and as she plunged her tongue deep into the blonde mother's
pussy.  
  
Then on the opposite sofa Carol straddled Shirley's face just as Stephie slid
between Shirley's legs and began to eat her cunt. Stephie probed Shirley's
pussy with her fingers and sucked on her clit. Shirley's legs were then lifted
on her shoulders exposing her ass and her little aperture. Stephie then began
to lick Shirley's bung hole and tickled it with her tongue. Stephie had a long
thin tongue that probed deeply into Shirley's ass as she continued to finger
fuck her pussy. Shirley knew she was going to cum soon so she picked up the
pace eating Carol's pussy. Carol held herself open for Shirley and she went
wild as Shirley nibbled on her clit.  
  
"Shirley is a natural," proclaimed Carol and then yelled, "Oh this is going to
be a quick one."  
  
Carol humped herself on Shirley's mouth and came in buckets all over her face.
Shirley reached her own climax and cum onto Stephie's face. Stephie sucked her
dry as if she didn't want to miss a drop of Shirley's nectar.  
  
"She is a real squirter," Stephie announced as she moved up the bed to
straddle Shirley's face and then said to Carol, "Your turn."  
  
"A real live squirter oh let me at her," Carol said excitedly and then covered
Shirley's pussy with her mouth.  
  
The actions were repeated this time with Stephie cumming on Shirley's face and
with Shirley squirting her juice into Carol's mouth. Only this time Carol
fingered Shirley's asshole the whole time as she ate her to climax. The three
women then separated and sat on the sofa watching Janet and Maria finish
Janet. Maria was riding Vicki's face as Janet ate out Vicki's pussy. Janet had
pushed anal beads into Vicki's ass and she was held onto the string as she ate
her. As Vicki started to cum, Janet pulled on the string and one by one the
beads popped out of Vicki's asshole. There were six beads in all and Vicki's
body jerked in spasm each time one of them cleared her sphincter intensifying
her orgasm. Janet moaned aloud into Vicki's cunt as her mouth was filled with
Vicki's juices. Vicki collapsed on the sofa next to Janet and Maria and the
three of them hugged and kissed one another.  

Stephie got up and went over to a bag in the corner of the room where she
retrieved six dildos four strap-on dildos and a couple of two headed dildos
that had to be 18" to 20" long with a fake set of balls in the center. Stephie
strapped on one dildo that was very large. Carol, Janet and Maria strapped on
the other ones that were about the same size. Carol lay on her back and
Stephie had Vicki straddle the dildo and lower her pussy on it. Stephie then
greased up Vicki's asshole and the strap-on cock. Stephie then pushed the fake
cock all the way into Vicki's asshole and then she and Carol began to fuck
Vicki's two holes.  
  
Maria and Janet were double fucking Shirley on the other sofa. Maria was on
her back playing with Shirley's tits as she fucked her pussy. Janet was
pounding away at Shirley's ass and had the entire dildo buried in her poop
chute. Shirley was moaning and screaming for the girls to fuck her hard.  
  
Vicki came and came from the ferocious pounding of her pussy and ass. She
pleaded with Stephie and Carol to let her rest for awhile. Carol walked over
to the other sofa and presented her fake cock covered with Vicki's cunt juice
to Shirley's mouth. Shirley sucked it right into her mouth as she was fucked
by Maria and Janet. It was an incredibly erotic sight to see Shirley triple
penetrated by three fake cocks.  
  
The strap-on dildos had little nubs on the end that massaged the pussies of
the girls doing the fucking. Maria, Janet and Carol were being stimulated by
the action of Shirley's body as they triple fucked her. Soon all four of them
climaxed again and then they collapsed in a heap on the sofa.  
  
"Very nice show girls," said Stephie as she sat next to Vicki and caressed her
breasts.  
  
They all needed a break so Stephie served some more wine and everyone kicked
back for awhile. All the women were now comfortable with their nudity and
sexuality. After consuming the wine and feeling well rested the women
rekindled the orgy and fucked each other well into the early morning hours.
They all tried a number of different positions and penetrations with the
dildos.  
  
Vicki and Shirley lay on their sides fucking Maria in the ass and pussy with
the strap-on cocks. Stephie and Carol did the same to Janet but Carol had a
double dildo in her ass with the other end in Shirley's ass. The six of them
were coupled together by the fake cocks. Later Janet and Maria were placed on
all fours with their butts touching. Stephie inserted one of the double headed
dildos in Maria's pussy and the other end in Janet's pussy. Then Stephie
placed a second double dildo in Maria's ass and the other end in Janet's ass.
Janet and Maria double fucked each other as they ate the other women's
pussies. As Janet and Maria were eating two of the women the other women knelt
down beside them and played with their tits and diddled their clits. Janet and
Maria had mind blowing orgasms and they were done for the night.  
  
Everyone was sated and exhausted and they were sprawled on the two sofas in
Stephie's family room. Stephie suggested that everyone turn in for the evening
and use her daughter's bedroom as well as her own. Stephie, Carol and Shirley
slept in Stephie's king size bed. Maria, Janet and Vicki slept in the twin's
king size bed. The women cuddled together and fell into a deep sleep.  
  
THE SLUMBER PARTY  
  
While the mothers and coaches were sucking and fucking their brains out the
teenagers were having their own party. As they sat around in Wendy's family
room there was a little tension in the air as no one was sure how the evening
would turn out. Anna, Lauren, Erica and Gretchen were clearly ready to party
but Marcia's and Wendy's apprehension were obvious.  
  
Erica got the ball rolling when she spoke up, "Well girls what she would do?
We could play spin the bottle or we could play truth or dare. But those games
are designed to get our clothes off and they take to long."  
  
"So why don't we just skip those games and just take our clothes off,"
Gretchen challenged.  
  
The girls giggled but no one moved until Erica did. She stood up and quickly
stripped off her clothes and stood before the other girls in her blonde
beauty. Then Gretchen followed her sister's lead and then she too stood naked
before the other girls. Gretchen and Erica were both beautiful shapely blondes
and their beauty did not escape Anna's roving eyes.  
  
"Okay it is time to share stories that is to tell something that we know that
no one else knows," Erica said and then added, "I'll go first, Gretchen and I
are lovers."  
  
The other girls stared in disbelief at Erica's admission. Then Erica and
Gretchen kissed each other deeply as their naked bodies pressed together and
they stroked each other's shapely ass.  
  
"I'll go next then," Gretchen volunteered, "Erica and I had sex with Wendy."  
  
All eyes went to Wendy and she was beet red with embarrassment. Wendy sat
there humiliated as she listened to the twins recall their sexual encounter.
Wendy was shocked when the twins told the others about the dildos.  
  
"Come here Wendy don't be shy," Erica beckoned the girl to her.  
  
Wendy walked over to the naked twin sisters and she allowed them to kiss her
and undress her. Anna and Lauren were really getting turned on now but Marcia
was scared and confused. Marcia was worried that someone would say something
about her and Lauren, but who else knew and certainly Lauren wouldn't say
anything, at least she hoped not. Erica and Gretchen continued to kiss and
fondle Wendy as the others wondered what would happen next.  
  
Anna could not restrain herself any longer, "Lauren and I are lovers," she
blurted out.  
  
"Well then you two should remove your clothes as well," Erica challenged them.  
  
Anna and Lauren stood up and undressed each other as they kissed. Marcia felt
a pang of jealousy shoot through her as she watched the petite Lauren in the
massive Anna's arms. Marcia wanted desperately to be in Lauren's arms but
there was nothing she could do at the moment. Now everyone was naked except
Marcia and the five beautiful naked teenagers stared at her waiting for her to
make a decision.  
  
"Come on Marcia off with your clothes," Gretchen ordered but Marcia just shook
her head and remained seated.  
  
"What is it Marcia haven't you been with another girl?" Erica probed.  
  
Marcia shook her head again and whispered, "No I haven't and I can't."  
  
"That is not true, Marcia and I made love for two straight days and she loved
it," Lauren blurted out.  
  
This caught everyone by surprise especially Anna. But Anna was not put out by
Lauren's admission because she always thought that Marcia was hot and now she
would have a chance to fuck her.  
  
"I should leave now," Marcia said as she got up and attempted to leave.  
  
"No, that is not an option," Anna said and took hold of the timid Marcia.  
  
"It's time your clothes came off Marcia," Erica directed.  
  
The five naked girls surrounded Marcia and she was powerless to stop them as
they undressed her. Her clothes came off quickly as then she was as naked as
the others. Marcia was lowered to the floor and the five girls were all over
her. Lauren and Anna sucked on her tits as Wendy drove her tongue deep into
Marcia's mouth. Erica and Gretchen worked over Marcia's pussy and ass. Marcia
felt all resistance leave her body and she allowed the girls to have their way
with her. Within minutes they had Marcia screaming and shaking with her first
orgasm of the night.  
  
Wendy then mounted Marcia and lowered her pussy to Marcia's mouth. Marcia did
not hesitate and she devoured Wendy's pussy and plunged her tongue deep into
the warm recess. Marcia was totally out of the closet now as she
enthusiastically lapped at her classmate's cunt. Anna slid between Marcia's
legs and kissed the pretty girl's inner thighs. Anna could smell Marcia's
excitement as she kissed the girl's thighs. Anna moved her tongue to Marcia's
pussy causing the girl to gasp into Wendy's quim. Anna quickly located
Marcia's clit and rolled it gently in her teeth. Marcia was going wild and she
picked up the pace as she lapped at Wendy's snatch.  
  
On the floor next to them Erica and Gretchen were working over Lauren. Lauren
was on all fours in a 69 position with Gretchen as Erica Knelt behind Lauren
and tongued her ass. Lauren was squirming with delight as she loved to have
her ass rimmed and probed with a hot tongue. Erica and Gretchen had Lauren in
a constant state of erotic bliss as they worked her pussy and ass together.
Lauren screamed in ecstasy as the orgasm rocked her hot petite body. Lauren's
juices covered Gretchen face as Gretchen own orgasm built in her body.  
  
"Cum for us pretty Lauren, cum for us," Erica cried out to the pretty
brunette.  
  
Lauren's mouth had left Gretchen's pussy momentarily but now it returned as
Lauren regained control. Gretchen then doused Lauren's face with female juices
as she too orgasmed. Lauren rolled over on her back on the floor next to
Gretchen and then Erica straddled her. Erica lowered her pussy to Lauren's
mouth as Gretchen got up to retrieve a strap-on dildo from her overnight bag.
Gretchen returned to her sister and Lauren and then she slid the fake cock
into Lauren's wet pussy. Lauren gasped into Erica's cunt when she felt the
rubber dick penetrate her pussy.  
  
Marcia and Wendy both had massive intense orgasms and collapsed next to each
other on the floor. Anna moved her muscular body and straddled Marcia. Marcia
watched as Anna lowered her pussy onto Marcia's mouth. Marcia didn't hesitate
and probed Anna's pussy with her tongue. Anna gasped when she felt the
cheerleader's tongue in her pussy probing and searching for the hard pearl.
Marcia found Anna's clit and rolled it in her teeth just as Anna had done to
her earlier. Anna went crazy and thrust her pussy onto Marcia's face. Anna
rubbed her cunt back and forth as she fucked herself on Marcia's face and
tongue. Anna then screamed as her body went into convulsions and collapsed on
the floor. Marcia held onto Anna's muscular buttocks and continued to lick
Anna's over sensitive pussy until Anna rolled over onto the floor.  
  
Anna, Wendy and Marcia watched as Lauren was fucked by Gretchen wearing the
big strap-on cock. Marcia had not seen a cock that big on any of the boys she
had fucked or jerked off and she was amazed how easy the petite Lauren handled
it. Erica came and juiced Lauren's mouth as Lauren held tight to Erica's
thrashing body. Erica eventually rolled off Lauren and joined the others
watching Gretchen and Lauren. Gretchen picked up her pace and pounded her
teammate's pussy with the stiff shaft. Lauren groaned as her hands sought out
her own breasts and she pinched her nipples. Then Lauren lost it and her body
thrashed around and she cried out as the orgasm rocked her body. Gretchen also
came as the dildo nub had done its job rubbing against her clit. Gretchen
leaned forward and kissed Lauren deeply as the two of them rode out the
orgasms.  
  
The girls took a short break as they lay on the floor together and then Anna
spoke, "Marcia have you ever been fucked by another girl?"  
  
"No I haven't just a couple of boys but they didn't have cocks that big,"
Marcia replied referring to the strap-on dildo.  
  
"Everyone else here has been fucked with dildos both vaginally and anally,"
quipped Erica.  
  
"Really you girls have had that big cock in your ass?" Marcia said shocked
just at the thought of it.  
  
"Sure once you are broken in it is easy and enjoyable," Lauren said with a
giggle.  
  
Marcia tried to visualize the petite Lauren being fucked in the ass by another
girl and then said, "I don't think that I could do that. I couldn't take
something that big in my virgin ass."  
  
"Well we have lot's of other toys to play with too before the night is over,"
Gretchen said as she retrieved her overnight bag.  
  
Gretchen emptied the bag on the coffee table and laid out the variety of toys
for all to see. Anna also brought her bag over and took out the toys that she
had brought along. There were strap-on dildos, double headed dildos, butt
plugs, anal beads and vibrators.  
  
"These should keep us busy tonight," Gretchen said with a slight sneer.  
  
"I wonder how our moms and the coaches are getting along tonight," Erica
teased.  
  
Gretchen laughed at her sister's statement and said, "I am sure they are
having a marvelous orgy by now."  
  
"What do you mean? My mother's not gay, she not going to do anything like
that," Marcia blurted out.  
  
"Mine isn't either," added Wendy.  
  
"My, my girls you are certainly in the dark," Erica replied and then added,
"Your mothers may not be gay but they are certainly bi-sexual."  
  
Then Erica and Gretchen told the rest of the girls what they knew. First they
made sure that the girls knew that Gretchen and Erica made love with their
mother. Then they told Wendy how her mother Vicki and their mother had made
love. They told Wendy that they had watched the two mothers getting it on
before they came over to Wendy's house that night. Wendy could hardly believe
what she was hearing and she wondered how she and her mother would look at
each other in the future.  
  
Erica and Gretchen continued and they told Marcia that her mother was a real
hot lady. They told her that Maria and Janet had both made it with Carol,
Marci's mother. Also they learned that Carol loved to be double fucked with
the strap-on cocks. Marcia turned beet red with embarrassment as she listened
to the twins. Marcia just could not bring herself to the realization that her
mother would engage in female sex after all she was still married.  
  
"Why don't you tell us about your mother?" Erica asked Lauren.  
  
Lauren decided that there were no secrets any longer so she told the girls
about her mother Shirley. She explained that Shirley and Maria had got it on
at the boutique. Then she went into great detail about herself, Anna and her
mother.  
  
Marcia again was flabbergasted and said, "There is no way that I would ever do
it with my mother!"  
  
Wendy added, "Me either."  
  
"Don't be too hasty girls you may be surprised some day," Gretchen said
laughingly.  
  
"All this talk has made me horny again," announced Anna.  
  
"Me too and it is time for some more fun," agreed Erica.  
  
Anna picked up a harness and fastened it to herself. Then she snapped in the
imposing rubber cock and walked toward Marcia. "Come on Marcia I am dying to
fuck you. I'll take it slow and you'll adjust to it quickly."  
  
Marcia took Anna's hand and let herself be directed to a space on the floor.
Marcia lay on her back with her pussy already wet in anticipation. Anna was
true to her word and eased the fake cock in a little at a time allowing Marcia
to adjust to its size. Within minutes it was sliding in and out of Marcia's
sopping wet pussy. Marcia pushed her hips up at Anna and wrapped her legs
around the muscular girl's torso. Marcia began to fuck back at Anna trying to
meet the thrusts as the cock entered her womb. It wasn't long before Marcia
was screaming out from the intensity of her orgasm. Anna continued to fuck
Marcia slowly until Marcia begged her to stop. Anna withdrew the cock from
Marcia's pussy and rolled the girl on her side to watch the other girls in
action. Anna then got behind Marcia and slipped the rubber cock back in her
pussy. Anna reached around and fondled Marcia's incredible tits as she fucked
her slowly from behind.  
  
Erica and Gretchen had arranged Wendy and Lauren so they could fuck each other
with the double dildo. Then Gretchen got behind Wendy and shoved the strap-on
cock up her ass. Erica got behind Lauren and slid her strap-on cock into
Lauren's ass. The four girls frantically fucked each other as they appeared to
be racing toward their orgasms. Marcia could hardly believe her eyes as she
watched her classmates in one of the most lewd display of sex that she had
ever seen but at the same time Marcia found it to be very erotic. Wendy and
Lauren were the first to cum and their bodies crashed together as they were
impaled on the double cock in their pussies and the strap-on cocks in their
asses. Gretchen and Erica kept right on fucking the two girls until the nubs
on the strap-on cocks had done their job. Then Gretchen and Erica both
orgasmed as they pulled the girls bodies close to them pressing their tits
into one another.  
  
The rest of the night was a variety of compilations for the six girls but with
most attention being paid to Marcia since she was the latest to join the
group. Gretchen was fucking Marcia with a double headed dildo when Erica told
her to roll over. Gretchen rolled to her back taking Marcia with her and
keeping the double cock in their pussies as Marcia ended up on top. Gretchen
held Marcia tightly as she knew what her sister was up to. Gretchen kissed
Marcia deeply as they fucked and then she felt Marcia's body tense in her arms
and try to break loose from the grip and kiss. Erica had worked the well lubed
fake cock into Marcia's ass.  
  
Marcia twisted and tried to break loose as her eyes filled up with tears. But
Gretchen held her firmly as Erica worked the cock inch by inch into Marcia's
ass. Once it was in about halfway the twins resumed their fucking motions and
Marcia gradually adjusted to the double penetration. As the twins fucked
Marcia the cock worked their way in deeper and were soon buried in the two
holes. Marcia then began to fuck back at the twins as she felt another orgasm
building in her body. Marcia jerked and thrashed about as a mind blowing
orgasm sent tremors through her body. Marcia cried out loud as she experienced
the most intense orgasm of the night and exploded in climax.  
  
All the girls took turns with Marcia that night as she was repeatedly fuck in
her ass and pussy. By the time the girls were ready to go to sleep, Marcia had
been fucked by each girl and she had eaten each of their pussies. They left
Marcia to sleep on the floor where she had passed out and then they went to
bed. Anna and Lauren slept together and Wendy slept with the twins.  
  
SUNDAY MORNING THE AFTERMATH  
  
Sunday morning at both houses was a morning of some tender love making and
quiet time. The women slowly woke up at Stephie's home and made love in the
bed or in the shower. Then they put on robes supplied by Stephie and gathered
together for a light breakfast. There was no rush so everyone enjoyed their
second and third cups of coffee before they eventually dressed and went back
to their own homes. Both Carol and Vicki wondered how they would face their
daughters Marcia and Wendy now that they knew the girls enjoyed female sex.
Also by now Marcia and Wendy would have heard about their mothers
participating in the female orgy not to mention their previous encounters.  
  
At Wendy's house it was a similar scene as the girls woke up slowly. Lauren
and Anna made love in a 69 position before hitting the showers. Wendy,
Gretchen and Erica ate each other's pussy before showering. Marcia awoke by
herself and she was grateful that she was alone as her body ached from all the
attention the previous night. Marcia took a shower in the downstairs bathroom
and she washed her pussy and asshole thoroughly. Marcia thought about her
mother and what she may have done last night with the other women. Marcia
picture her mother being double fucked with big dildos just as she had been
last night. Marcia found her soapy hands caressing her beautiful tits and
working around her pussy. Marcia fingered her pussy and then surprised herself
by sticking a soapy finger in her asshole. Marcia closed her eyes and
fantasized that her mother was playing with her pussy and ass.  
  
Marcia whispered to herself, "Oh yes mother play with me. Play with my pussy,
play with my ass, make me cum."  
  
Marcia made herself cum as she imagined herself with her mother and that her
mother was eating Marcia's pussy and fingering her asshole. Marcia gasped as
she came on her fingers and then felt ashamed that she had fantasized about
her mother. Marcia did not know what to expect when she next saw her mother,
how would they both react?  

All the girls showered, dressed and headed back to their own homes. Anna,
Erica and Gretchen thoroughly cleaned all the sex toys that they used the
previous night and packed them back in their bags. It had been an enjoyable
weekend as new doors had been opened for the girls.  
  
THE GAME  
  
Tuesday the day of the big game finally arrived and as the Lady Cougars rode
the school bus to Lincoln South there was nervousness and apprehension among
the players. Maria and Janet could feel the tension on the bus and even they
were worried. Maria and Janet were worried that the game plan might backfire
and they the team would be embarrassed but they both knew that the plan was
their best chance to be competitive.  
  
As the bus arrived and the team made their way across the field they saw
Lincoln South warming up. They were confident as they went through their warm-
ups and even snickered at the Ridgeway team as they past by. Maria gathered
her team on the bench and reminded them before they took the field for warm-
ups that no matter what happened today that they were to do their best. The
team was to stay with the game plan no matter what that the strategy was
sound. Maria also reminded her team about the officials and that no matter how
one sided the calls appeared to be that they were to keep playing and not get
on the officials, no complaints.  
  
The Lady Cougars took the field for warm-ups and as they got loose they felt
better about themselves and their chances that day. The cocky Lincoln South
coach came over and introduced herself to Maria and Janet. She welcomed Maria
to the conference and promised her that she would take it easy on her today.
Maria smiled and thanked the opposing coach for her generosity.  
  
"What a bitch," quipped Janet as the other coach went back across the field.  
  
"Well let she how she holds up when she sees what we have in store for her,"
Maria replied.  
  
The officials blew the whistle signaling both teams to clear the field. Maria
sent her starting lineup out onto the field and looked up to the heavens as if
asking for help. The ball was put in play and the Lady Cougars went right to
the game plan. They stacked themselves in tight to there own end of the field
making it almost impossible for Lincoln South to penetrate the defense.
Ridgeway made no attempt to run an offense as they focused on disrupting the
Lincoln South offense. It was working.  
  
Lincoln South normally got off to a fast start and scored a couple of goals in
the first half but today they could do nothing against Ridgeway's defense. The
defense stymied Lincoln South and it was obvious that they were frustrated.
The Cougars saw the frustration of the other team which only served to
increase Ridgeway's confidence. The first half ended in a scoreless tie and
both teams left the field.  
  
Maria lauded her team's effort but reminded them that the other team would
come out with a vengeance. Lincoln South was deep with talented players and
they would keep throwing fresh bodies at the Cougars. Maria also told her team
not to be lured into any scuffles that would result in being ejected from the
game as she was sure that Lincoln would resort to anything at this point.  
  
Across the field the Lincoln South coach was not addressing her team but she
was lambasting the officials. This did not go unnoticed by Maria and she once
again reminded her team not to show any displeasure with the officiating.
Maria was sure that the officials could do what they could to assure a Lincoln
South victory. The officials blew the whistle signaling the start of the
second half.  
  
The game ended in a scoreless tie despite the many efforts of the Lincoln
South players and the official to do everything to win the game. The officials
called numerous bogus fouls against the Cougars resulting in penalty kicks.
Anna was flawless in the goal and stopped ten penalty shots on goal. Lincoln
South players crashed into Ridgeway players sometimes knocking them down and
trying to provoke them, but the Lady Cougars just picked themselves up and
kept playing like nothing happened. At one point with just a minute to go
Maria signaled to the Kesler twins to execute the breakaway. Anna saw the
twins hang back and when she scooped up the ball she made a powerful throw to
the wide open twins. A Lincoln South player caught them but they easily
maneuvered around her and Gretchen passed the ball to Erica who drilled it
passed the goalie into the net. The Cougars and their fans erupted with joy
when the apparent winning goal was scored but it was short lived as one of the
officials called Erica for being off-side.  
  
Maria gathered her emotionally and physically drained team on the sidelines
and reminded them that they would still win the game. She set the sequence for
penalty kicks and knowing that Lincoln would let their best kickers go last,
Maria sent her best kickers out first. Both Gretchen and Erica scored goals
and Anna blocked the first two kicks. Both teams missed the third kicks so the
score was 2-0 in favor of Ridgeway. Lauren's kick just missed as it hit the
side bar and scooted away. Then Lincoln scored to make the score 2-1. Wendy's
shot was just wide and now it was down to Lincoln's best penalty kicker to tie
the game.  
  
The girl approached the ball and seemed to get Anna moving the wrong way but
Anna recovered quickly and dove across the goal. She tipped the ball with her
hand deflecting it enough to have it hit the cross bar and bounce back onto
the field. The Cougars went wild as they had just pulled off the upset of the
year. The players danced around and hugged one another. Maria and Janet
embraced each other and soon they were surrounded by the mothers and other
friends who made the trip to see the game.  
  
Across the field the scene was different as Lincoln South player hung their
heads in disbelief. The coach was still ragging on the officials and then
Maria saw her talking with the sports writers from the local papers. Maria
gathered he team up for a cheer before they go on the bus and back to
Ridgeway. The two reporters caught up with Maria to interview her and Janet
just stood by.  
  
"So Maria how does it feel to have upset the pre-season number one team?" a
reporter named Linda asked.  
  
"I am so happy for my girls, they worked so hard and fought so hard for this
victory." Maria replied.  
  
Another reporter named Paula asked, "What do you think about Coach Thomas'
comments? I repeat it was a cheap trick, a sneak attack a regular Pearl
Harbor."  
  
Maria laughed and replied, "Well I am sure she is disappointed and Lincoln has
a great team. I know they will be back and it will be a tough game when we
face them again in November."  
  
Linda asked, "How did you feel about the officiating? It was very one-sided
with some very questionable calls."  
  
"Listen there is probably always something you can find wrong with
officiating. There are calls made that go against both teams. My girls worked
hard out there and they didn't focus on the officials, they focused on the
game and that's why they won."  
  
"But what if you had lost? Wouldn't you be upset with the calls then? Linda
persisted.  
  
"But we didn't lose, we won and right now I am going to celebrate with my
team. Thank you!" Maria concluded and made her way to the team bus.  
  
The two reporters looked at each other and Linda said, "Wow she is a class
act."  
  
"I'll say you gave her every chance to bash the officials and she passed. I
hope she has a great season," Paula agreed.  
  
Maria and Janet got on the bus and were welcomed by cheers from the players.
Maria was lauded by the players for her game plan but she quickly reminded her
team that they were the ones who carried it out. She also reminded them how
their hard work and physical conditioning paid off as the team had plenty of
stamina left at the end of the game. The ride back was noisy as expected but
it was a welcome change from last year's trips back from away games. When the
bus arrived at Ridgeway word had gotten out that they had beaten Lincoln South
and there was a small gathering to welcome them.  
  
All the girls showered dressed and headed home and they were still sky high.
Maria and Janet sat in the coach's office both of them mentally and
emotionally drained.  
  
"Well you did it!" Janet sighed.  
  
"No we did it, the team did." Maria replied.  
  
"I know but it was your strategy your game plan that allowed it to happen. The
girls played fantastic but you had them ready and you gave them the
confidence," Janet stated.  
  
"Janet thank you but you know we will win because of a total team effort and
that's what it will take the rest of the year. Lincoln will be very tough when
we play them at the end of the year. But for now let's enjoy this victory
because tomorrow it is back to work. The girls have to understand that the
season is not over yet and that everyone will be gunning for us now. We will
have to take it one game at a time and keep everyone focused," Maria answered.  
  
"Do you want to grab a shower here or would you like to come by my house and
we could shower together?" Janet asked with a sultry smile.  
  
"How about if we shower together and treat each other to a nice massage?"
Maria suggested.  
  
"Sounds delicious," Janet said and they then left the school building and
headed for Janet's house.  
  
POST GAME ACTIVITIES  
  
Anna went to Lauren's house that evening and the two of them made passionate
love along with Lauren's mother Shirley. The three of them were ecstatic about
winning the game and celebrated the best way they knew how.  
  
Stephie was in bed with her beautiful twin daughters. She was so proud of her
girls that she told them they could do anything they wanted that night. The
twin's favorite was to be double penetrated. So Gretchen and her mother fucked
each other's pussy with a double dildo as Erica fucked her sister's ass with
another double dildo. After one round of orgasms the girls changed places so
that Erica was in the middle.  
  
Janet and Maria showered together and took their time washing each other's
body. Their hands moved over their shapely bodies, firm tits and asses. They
fingered each other's pussy and asshole assuring that they were squeaky clean.
Maria massaged Janet first and had her lay on her back. Maria worked the body
lotion all over the front of Janet's tits, abs and legs. Then Janet turned
over and Maria worked her back, shoulders, legs and buttocks. Maria teased
Janet and slid a slick finger into her asshole. Janet wiggled her ass and
Maria pushed it in further. Maria then lifted Janet by the hips causing her to
raise her ass then Maria slipped her tongue into Janet's sweet nether hole and
rimmed her. Janet screamed her delight as Maria's tongue probed deeper into
her back passage.  
  
"I have to cum Maria you are driving me crazy," Janet pleaded.  
  
Janet rolled over and spread her legs for Maria who dove right in and tongued
the sweet pussy. Janet was fast approaching her orgasm and she gently held
onto Maria's silky black hair. Janet gasped as she climaxed and sprayed her
juices into Maria's receptive mouth. Maria moved up next to Janet and the two
of them kissed and stroked each other's body.  
  
"Your turn Maria," Janet said.  
  
Maria rolled on her back and the same routine was performed on her by Janet.
First the front of her body was massaged, then the back of the body. Maria was
then rimmed by Janet and finally rolled over for cunninglus. Maria arched her
back as her orgasm approached as Janet nibbled on the Spanish beauty's clit.
Janet knew what to expect and she was prepared when Maria's pussy squirted all
over Janet's face. Janet licked up every drop of Maria's sweet nectar and ran
her tongue over the engorged sensitive clit.  
  
Janet crawled up next to Maria and they embraced and kissed. After another
hour passed Maria got cleaned up, dressed and made her way home. Janet stayed
naked in bed and thought how great it would be if Maria moved in with her. But
Janet knew that was not possible as long as they taught and coached at the
same school.  
  
Across town a frustrated Marcia and her mother Carol lay in their own beds
playing with their pussies. Marcia's father was out of town so they were home
alone. They both knew about each other's female experiences but they had not
talked about it. Neither one of them was comfortable approaching the topic so
they stayed in their own beds and masturbated, at least for now anyway.  
  
A similar scene was carried out at Vicki and Wendy's house but they were a
little more adventuresome. They both worked vibrators in and out of their
pussies to satisfy their immediate needs. Vicki had almost gone to her
daughter's room but she thought better of it since the next day was a school
day and decided to wait until the weekend.  
  
NEXT CHAPTER  
  
The next chapter will cover the remainder of the season leading up to the
playoffs. It will include more sessions with coaches, players and mothers.




        Lesbian Soccer Moms Ch. 05


_INTRODUCTION  
  
This chapter covers part of the soccer season for the Ridgeway Lady Cougars.
The team does well in fact better than ever expected. The mothers and
daughters get closer and a very strong bond develops between Janet and Maria.
Two more soccer players discover themselves during the season. _  
  
*  
  
AN ACTIVE AND EROTIC SATURDAY  
  
The Lady Cougars had won six consecutive conference games before suffering a
tough 2-1 loss to St. Mary's in a non-conference game. St. Mary's was
undefeated and currently the number three ranked team in the state. Ridgeway
had handled their conference opponents including an impressive 3-0 win over
Glenbrook who had only lost to Lincoln South up to then. A couple of the games
were so lopsided that Maria was able to play her non-starters for most of the
game giving them more and more game experience. Ridgeway was 6-0, Lincoln
South 5-1 and Glenbrook 4-2 in the conference standings. The second half of
the season would be very tough for Ridgeway as every team particularly Lincoln
South would be gunning for them.  
  
On Saturday morning and the team and the players, coaches and mothers were
relaxing in their homes following a Friday night victory over Westfield. The
Lady Cougars easily defeated Westfield 6-0 and once again many of the non-
starters played much of the game. The newspaper reported on the team's
progress and turnaround from last year and it was already pointing to the
season's big game the rematch between Ridgeway and Lincoln South. A new
rivalry in the conference had formed between the perennial power and the
upstart Cougars.  
  
This particular Saturday Stephie Kesler and her two daughters were on their
way home from shopping at the mall. Vicki and her daughter Wendy had joined
the Keslers and were in the same car as they drove back from the mall. Vicki
heard a groan come from the back seat and then another one. When she turned
around she saw that Wendy, who was seated between the twins, had her blouse
and bra pushed up over her breasts, her skirt was bunched at the waist and her
panties were pushed down around her ankles. Erica and Gretchen were kissing
Wendy's tits as they fingered her pussy. Wendy was groaning in pleasure from
the attention the twins paid to her body.  
  
Stephie looked in the mirror and smiled at her twin daughters then she looked
to Vicki and said, "Vicki why don't you slip off your panties and slide closer
to me."  
  
Vicki blushed at the request but did as she was asked. She took off her
panties and slid as far over in the seat as she could. Stephie drove with one
hand and never took her eyes off the road as she fingered Vicki's pussy with
her right hand. Vicki gasped as her pussy was played with and her clit was
located. Vicki thought she would cum any second when Stephie removed her
fingers and spoke again.  
  
"Here we are. Tidy yourselves up girls and let's take this inside," Stephie
directed as she pulled into her driveway.  
  
The five of them went into the Kesler's home and within minutes everyone was
naked in the family room. Vicki knew that she and her daughter Wendy were in
for another erotic night at the hands of Stephie and her two daughters Erica
and Gretchen. While these two families began their sexual journey another two
players had also just returned from a day of shopping.  
  
Amanda and Christy, the Ridgeway soccer team's halfbacks, had spent the day at
the mall and they had since returned to Amanda's house. Having the house all
to themselves Amanda decided to make her move on Christy. Amanda had long
desired Christy but up to now had never approached her teammate. It started
with a kiss and Christy surprised Amanda by accepting the kiss. Amanda pushed
it further and plunged her tongue into Christy's mouth taking her breath away.
Christy at first stiffened in Amanda's arms but then relaxed and kissed Amanda
back. Their tongues intertwined and Christy panted as her emotions got the
best of her. Christy had never made it with a girl or a guy but she liked and
trusted Amanda. At that moment Christy decided to go as far as Amanda would
take her.  
  
Amanda started to disrobe the pretty brunette teenager and quickly had her
down to her bra and panties. Christy was built very similar to Amanda and
their bodies almost matched the biggest difference being their hair color.
Amanda unhooked Christy's bra and slowly slid the straps down her arms.
Christy felt a shiver go through her body and her skin was covered with goose
bumps.  
  
Amanda dropped to her knees and hooked her fingers in the waistband of
Christy's panties. Amanda slowly peeled the panties down and off of Christy's
body revealing a neatly trimmed pussy with a little brown tuft of hair.
Christy lifted her legs one at a time as Amanda removed her panties. Christy
stood like a zombie as Amanda looked directly at her teammate's snatch. Amanda
touched Christy's quim lightly with one finger and it was like an electric
shock going through Christy's body. Christy's body leaped involuntarily.
Amanda stood up and looked into her friend's eyes and whispered to her.  
  
"Your pussy is very wet. Have you ever been with another girl?" Amanda asked
sexily.  
  
Christy just shook her head unsure of what was next to come. Christy was
struggling with her own desire and fear. Should she run out of the room or
should she let the beautiful Amanda have her way with her? Amanda didn't wait
for a verbal answer from Christy and just took her silence as permission to
continue the seduction. Amanda quickly took off her own clothes and embraced
Christy holding her close so that their tits mashed against each others.
Christy could feel Amanda's hard nipples pressing into her own and her pussy
was on fire.  
  
A gasp came from Christy, and she tried to pull away. Moving in closer and
pressing her against the wall Amanda brushed her lips against Christy's
hungering for a taste of her sweet mouth. Christy gave in and submitted to
Amanda parting her lips following Amanda's lead. As Amanda's tongue tasted
Christy's mouth again she shuddered with pleasure and delight. She heard
Christy moan against her and felt the hot breath exhale into her waiting
mouth.  
  
Christy's tongue began to explore Amanda's lips, the soft tip running over her
and tentatively moving inside her. Amanda opened wider, allowing the young
girl's tongue to trace the ridges on the roof of her mouth. Amanda felt the
place between her legs grow hot, and she softly rubbed herself against the
girl in her arms, thrusting her hips against her teammate and rubbing her
pussy against Christy's leg. Amanda's clit seemed to scream out with
frustration, the soft skin of the young girl teasing the flesh around it.
Amanda moaned against Christy's lips, completely forgetting all her senses
except for the arousal flooding her and the feel of Christy's lips against
hers.  
  
Every part of Amanda's body ached for Christy as she held her closer. Amanda
caressed the flat of Christy's stomach running the tips of her fingers over
her abs. Amanda's fingers grew bolder as she traced the curve of Christy's
waist up to the small curve of her bosom. Amanda ran her hand around Christy's
small firm breast and toyed with the semi-erect nipple. Pressing slightly
harder Amanda teased the nipple, running her thumb around Christy's aureole.
Christy's tiny nubs grew larger and poked out more obviously and she let out a
soft moan.  
  
Christy's eyes were shut with her lips slightly parted and Amanda could see
her chest heave with each heavy breath she took. Amanda ran her fingers around
in circles as she traced down Christy's body again. Christy moaned softly and
thrust her breasts upwards as her legs were slowly inched apart. Christy
allowed Amanda better access to her body without even being aware of it.
Christy's hips thrust upwards in very slight movements and Amanda smiled
because she knew that Christy now wanted what she wanted.  
  
Heat seemed to radiate from between Christy's thighs and Amanda could feel the
warmth as her hand got closer and closer to Christy's pussy. After what seemed
like an eternity of stroking her thigh Amanda's hand got close enough to touch
Christy's little brown tuft of hair guarding her pussy. With the tip of her
first finger Amanda traced the shape of Christy's pussy between her legs and
ran her finger up from Christy's ass to her clit. Christy gasped and thrust
towards Amanda again, her hips grinding against Amanda's hand.  
  
Amanda pushed Christy lightly and lowered her to the bed. Stroking her own
pussy lightly Amanda looked down at Christy's beautiful body. Christy was
writhing in small movements of pleasure, her breasts and hard nipples were
standing straight out; her arms were at her sides with clenched fists and her
legs squirmed looking for more. Amanda at that moment wanted more than
anything to hold Christy in her arms, to caress her bare body, to taste her,
to stroke her, to fuck her.  
  
Slowly Amanda sank to her knees and put Christy's pussy level with her eyes.
Amanda licked her lips and reached for Christy's legs. Christy bucked forward,
her hips pushing her fragrant crotch closer to Amanda's face. The sweet scent
of Christy's pussy filled Amanda's nostrils and she licked her lips once
again, trying to hold off contact with Christy's pussy which was now right in
front of her face.  
  
Amanda traced Christy's thighs with the tips of her fingers along Christy's
silky smooth youthful skin. Christy lifted upwards towards Amanda's face
moaning softly as she was as anxious for Amanda to taste her as Amanda was.  
  
Swiftly but gently Amanda kissed Christy's exposed pussy lips peeking out from
underneath her tuft of brown hair. Christy whimpered softly and thrust upwards
again toward Amanda's mouth. Amanda moved her mouth away from Christy's hot
body teasing her and letting her eyes take in the beautiful form squirming on
the bed before her. Amanda smiled to herself as she knew that she had Christy
exactly where she wanted.  
  
The bed moved slightly as Christy squirmed causing the bed covers to shift.
Christy's hips writhed ever so slightly as she covered her own tits with her
hands and she cried softly under her breath. Christy's eyes opened and her
lips parted and she moaned audibly as she made eye contact with Amanda.
Lowering her head Amanda once again turned her attention to Christy's fragrant
quivering pussy.  
  
"Oh, Amanda," Christy moaned.  
  
Amanda placed her hands on Christy's knees and slowly peeled her thighs apart.
The slick wetness from Christy's slit made a slushy noise as her pussy opened
in front of Amanda's face. Amanda pushed her knees even further apart and
licked her lips.  
  
"I have wanted this from the first time I saw you Christy," Amanda whispered
softly.  
  
Amanda eagerly put her mouth against Christy's pussy allowing her lips to
brush against it and causing Christy to moan again. Slowly Amanda snaked her
tongue out of her mouth and rubbed it against Christy's hard clit. With the
tip of her tongue Amanda teased the nub, flicking it softly as she listened to
Christy's cries of pleasure. Carefully Amanda moved her tongue down tracing
the outline of Christy's slit, running her tongue along the lips and into the
sopping skin between them.  
  
Christy's slick skin seemed to seep even more as Amanda lapped at it running
her tongue along the length of Christy's slit and back up again. The taste of
Christy was intoxicating and Amanda covered her snatch with her whole mouth.
Amanda opened her mouth wider and pushed her tongue inside Christy's slit.
Amanda flicked at the inside of the teenagers pussy and darted out again and
ran her mouth up towards Christy's clit again.  
  
Flicking her tongue rapidly Amanda brought Christy's clit to an erection that
made her cry out with pleasure. Christy moaned as Amanda ran the length of her
tongue over the hard nub. Amanda moved back and stretched for a moment.
Christy's whimpers filled the room and she strained thrusting towards Amanda's
mouth with a yearning desire for more. Christy's slit shimmered with her
juices and Amanda leaned forward to lick her some more.  
  
Amanda wrapped her lips around Christy's clit and sucked it hard. Christy
cried out in ecstasy and thrust her hips toward Amanda's face. Amanda moved
her hand up the teenager's leg and stroked the smooth skin with her fingertips
until her hand met Christy's pussy. Amanda slid her first finger and then
added her middle finger into the slick folds of Christy's cunt. Amanda wiggled
her fingers around inside Christy as she sucked on her hard throbbing clit.  
  
Christy cried out and tightened her pussy around Amanda's hand squeezing the
fingers. Amanda continued working her fingers in and out of Christy's pussy
and sucked her clit even harder than before flicking Christy's clit with her
tongue and tickling the tiny tip of the erect nub while she sucked on it.  
  
"Oh please, oh Amanda please!" Christy cried.  
  
Christy's hips humped Amanda's hand as she pumped her fingers in and out of
the teenager's pussy. Christy's fragrant skin ground against Amanda's face and
her hips twisted and gyrated as she writhed on the bed under Amanda's
manipulations.  
  
Christy's breathing became heavier and her chest was rising and falling
dramatically. Still sucking hard and pushing her fingers in and out Amanda
smiled to herself knowing that Christy's climax was approaching fast.
Christy's gyrations became more frantic, wilder, and animalistic as she panted
and lost control of her body. Christy's hands grabbed fistfuls of Amanda's
blond hair and she shrieked piercingly as her pussy began to spasm around
Amanda's fingers.  
  
With her fingers inside Christy's pussy Amanda ceased pumping and wriggled
them around inside Christy's soft flesh. Christy came in Amanda's mouth.
Christy's clit seemed to grow larger as her hips pushed upwards and the juice
flowed and covered Amanda's face. Amanda inhaled her scent deeply and she
groaned against Christy and sucked hard and long at her pussy until her
teammate began to relax.  
  
Christy's hips fell back down on the bed and Amanda released her clit. Amanda
slid her fingers out of Christy's wet slit and gently planted kisses on her
thighs. Softly Amanda lapped at the girl's juices and licked her clean of her
orgasm as Christy whimpered and shivered underneath Amanda's expert tongue.
Kissing her cooling thighs once more Amanda slid up on the bed and laid next
to the drained Christy on the mattress.  
  
Christy lay silently for a few minutes with her lips parted as she breathed
shallowly through her mouth while her body lay limp next to Amanda. As Amanda
watched her and admired her soft features Christy recovered from her orgasm
and slowly opened her eyes and smiled at Amanda. Looking into her eyes Amanda
smiled back at her and Christy blushed slightly her cheeks turning pink as
Amanda looked into her face.  
  
"You have an incredible body, Christy and you are very sensual," Amanda
whispered in her sultry tone.  
  
"You have to believe me I've never done anything like that," Christy whispered
back, her soft voice barely audible and then she added, "I have never cum like
that in my life it was incredible."  
  
Christy's nipples were standing half erect and her chest was still heaving
with each deep breath she took. Amanda heard the girl's excitement escape
softly through her lips as she slid her wet fingers over the teenager's
breasts and tickled the tiny nipples with the tips of her fingers. Christy
gasped audibly as Amanda flicked the nipples as they grew wrinkled and hard
underneath her touch. Christy groaned again and pushed her breasts up into
Amanda's hand. Sensing the girl's desire Amanda lowered her mouth down to one
of the nipples and nipped it lightly with her teeth. Christy cried out and
held Amanda firmly to her breast.  
  
Christy's hands reached up and wrapped around Amanda's bare breasts and her
nipples puckered as Christy watched them come to life. With a small bit of
pressure Christy pulled Amanda's chest down toward her own. Amanda lifted a
leg over Christy's body and straddled her waist. Bending down Amanda's breasts
brushed against Christy's and Amanda's nipples felt jolts of fire through her
body as they rubbed against teenagers. Their faces moved towards each others
and their lips sought each other meeting in a kiss of pure passion.  
  
Christy reached up and held Amanda's head with her hand as her fingers ran
through the blonde's hair and their lips probed each other. Christy breathed
deeply as she smelt and tasted herself for the first time, her juices still
fresh on her lover's lips. Christy opened her mouth hungrily and Amanda
quickly parted her lips and allowing the girl's tongue to enter her mouth
which she began to explore.  
  
A moan escaped Christy and Amanda felt her tremble yet again. Amanda felt the
girl's hands move down the length of her body and caress her skin. Gently she
guided Amanda's body up so that her mouth could find Amanda's breasts. She
gasped as Christy's lips locked around one of her nipples and sucked deeply
emulating what Amanda had done to her earlier. Her hands cupped the cheeks of
Amanda's shapely ass and her youthful fingers softly massaged Amanda's hot
skin as she sucked long on Amanda's nipple. Christy would leave one nipple wet
and chilled by the air as she moved to the opposite one and sucked again
driving Amanda wild.  
  
Throwing her head back Amanda opened her mouth as if to moan but no sound came
out. Christy continued to play with Amanda's breasts as her teeth scraped
against the nipples and pinched them while her hands still dug into Amanda's
firm ass. Amanda reached up and grabbed onto the headboard of the bed to
support her body as she pushed her chest closer to Christy's face. Christy
grunted around Amanda's breast and she sucked even more into her mouth.
Christy not only sucked on the nipple but on the whole area around it as if
she were trying to devour Amanda with the same hunger that Amanda had for the
girl's pussy earlier.  
  
Amanda's cunt was dripping wet and she could feel her juices flowing down her
thighs as she ground her hips against the teenager. The fire in Amanda's
nipples spread through her chest and belly to her pussy and ignited so much
passion inside her body she felt as if she may explode at any minute. Still
holding tightly to the headboard Amanda moved her hips up Christy's body so
that she could place her pussy in front of the girl's mouth. Christy
reluctantly released her mouth hold on Amanda's tits as the blonde moved her
pussy into place.  
  
With a moan of pleasure Christy stretched and kissed Amanda's pussy. Her warm
lips made the blonde shiver as they caressed her lips and one of her hands
caressed Amanda's ass. As she breathed on Amanda's pussy the girl's warm
breath made her tingle. Amanda moaned out loud unable to control her own
gyrations as Christy moved closer and closer to her pussy.  
  
At the first touch of her tongue Amanda nearly jumped out of her skin. Amanda
had experienced this before but there was something very special and very
erotic with this beautiful teenager. She moaned loudly again as Christy's
tongue timidly lapped at her cunt. Christy shifted underneath her for a better
grip on Amanda's ass, and the hot tongue snaked out again and the girl's hands
tightened on Amanda's ass bringing her pussy closer to her face as she licked
Amanda's juices.  
  
Amanda moved her hips, gyrated, thrust, and whimpered as Christy began to lick
her more insistently copying everything that Amanda had done to her. The
teenager's lips parted and she sucked on Amanda's skin, taking parts of her
into her mouth, sucking softly and then diving back inside Amanda's pussy with
her tongue. Christy was inexperienced but she was a quick learner and was
doing well. Amanda cried out as Christy's lips found her clit.  
  
With just the slightest brushes of Christy's tongue and lips against her
sensitive clit Amanda felt her body go into convulsions. She felt the juices
flow out of her body and she cried out as her buttocks tensed in Christy's
hands and she drove my pussy into her eager young girl's face. The orgasm
rocked Amanda's body as her pussy pulsed and her muscles tensed and she came
gushing onto Christy's face.  

"Christy!" Amanda cried out. "Christy, don't stop, Oh God don't stop!"  
  
Christy plunged her tongue deep inside Amanda drinking her juices as they
poured out of her body. Each lap of the young girl's long tongue sent more
shivers through Amanda's body, tingles shot up her spine, down through her
legs, around her arms and through her pussy. As it finally it ceased and
Amanda's body relaxed there were still slight tremors of aftershock shaking
her as she sat on Christy's face. The teenager continued to lick Amanda
tenderly savoring the experience of her first girl on girl sex. Christy's
silky tongue ran up and down Amanda's widespread slit as she remained
motionless on top of the beautiful young girl. With a reluctant groan Amanda
shifted her body off of Christy and lay down on the bed next to her. Taking
Christy in her arms Amanda pulled her naked body towards hers. Their skin
sticky with sweat and cum added to the eroticism of the moment as they held
one another.  
  
The two pretty classmates and teammates held each other close as they both
reflected on their lovemaking. At that moment Christy was sure that she loved
Amanda and that they would make love many more times. They kissed each other
tenderly as they relaxed in each other's arms. Amanda heard someone enter the
house and she knew that her mother had arrived home.  
  
"Christy we have to get dressed quickly but be quiet," Amanda whispered with a
sense of urgency.  
  
The two girls hurriedly got dressed and went downstairs to greet Amanda's
mother. "Hi mom," Amanda called.  
  
"Oh hi dear, hi Christy, all done shopping so soon?" Constance greeted the two
girls.  
  
"Yeah we just come home a few minutes before you did," Amanda replied and then
asked, "Mom would it be okay if Christy stayed for dinner and crashed here
tonight?"  
  
"Sure that's fine with me if it is all right with your mother Christy,"
Constance answered.  
  
"Thanks Mrs. Becker, I'll call her and see if it's okay," Christy said trying
to hide her excitement.  
  
Christy called home and got permission from her mother to spend the night at
Amanda's. "It's okay with her, Mrs. Becker."  
  
"Oh my Amanda, I just remembered I told my sister Alice that I would help her
with some sewing tonight. Will you two be okay here by yourselves this
evening?" Constance asked her daughter.  
  
"Absolutely mom, we will be fine," Amanda said as she secretly stroked
Christy's ass.  
  
Christy and Amanda could hardly hide their excitement when they learned they
would be alone again after dinner. Christy felt her pussy heat up just at the
thought of being with Amanda again.  
  
That same afternoon Carol was tending to Marcia's leg that she injured
cheerleading at the football game Friday night. Carol asked her where it was
and Marcia explained that it was the back of her thigh. Carol told her
daughter lay face down on her bed so that she could massage the cramp from her
leg. Carol started to massage Marcia's leg and asked if it felt better. Marcia
told her mother that the pain was a little higher and Carol moved her hands up
her daughter's thigh almost up to her panties. Marcia smiled to herself as she
heard her mother breathing heavier as she massaged her daughter's leg. Marcia
had set the trap for her mother and she was taking the bait.  
  
Carol was consumed by the beauty of her daughter, her shapely legs and her
shapely ass. As Carol rubbed Marcia's thigh she allowed her hands to brush
against Marcia's panty covered ass and pussy. Carol could feel the dampness in
Marcia's cotton panties. Carol told Marcia that she thought it could be a glut
muscle and began to massage Marcia's ass cheek. Marcia was quite a sight with
her skirt pushed up over her hips and her panty enclosed curvy ass exposed.  
  
I have some cream that will help the soreness Carol told Marcia and retrieved
it from her bathroom. Carol's voice trembled as she explained to Marcia that
it would be better to remove her panties in order to apply the cream. Marcia
just nodded shyly and Carol gripped the girl's panties with both hands and
slowly peeled them off of Marcia's buttocks. Carol left them at the back of
the girl's thighs just above her knee high socks. Marcia was a thing of beauty
and Carol felt herself tremble. Carol rubbed the cream all over Marcia's thigh
and ass cheek. She reached between the thighs and purposely brushed her hands
against Marcia's pubic area.  
  
Marcia jumped and giggled, "That feels weird!"  
  
Carol daringly continued the casual assault on her daughter's body coming into
contact more and more with her pussy. Carol knew she was crossing the line but
she was now intent on seducing her own daughter unbeknown that she was the one
being seduced.  
  
"Oh mother what are you doing? My pussy is tingling and I'm getting so wet,"
Marcia faked her surprise.  
  
"Can you feel how wet I am getting mother?" Marcia implored.  
  
Carol felt Marcia's pussy and her resistance broke down. "Yes I can feel how
wet you are Marcia, you are excited and I am excited, let me help you," Carol
pleaded.  
  
Carol began to finger Marcia's twat and diddle her clit. Marcia began to hump
Carol's hand.  
  
"Oh mother what's happening to me?" Marcia continued.  
  
"Relax my dear Marcia and let me show you the joy of woman sex," Carol almost
begged.  
  
Carol rolled Marcia over on her back and removed her panties from her legs.
Carol pushed her daughter's legs apart and leaned in to taste her pussy.
Marcia jumped from the initial contact of her mother's tongue on her clit but
then settled down and let her mother lick her through multiple orgasms. Carol
was an expert cunt licker every bit as good as the soccer players and Marcia
enjoyed every moment of it. Carol sucked on Marcia's clit and fingered her
daughter's pussy.  
  
Carol then added a finger to daughter's asshole. Carol had her middle finger
in Marcia's ass and her thumb in Marcia's cunt as she brought the girl off
numerous times. Marcia creamed Carol's face soaking it with her juices. Carol
rose up and leaned over to kiss Marcia allowing her daughter to taste her own
nectar. Marcia surprised Carol by driving her tongue into her mother's mouth
and deeply French kissing her.  
  
"Oh mother that was wonderful, can I do something for you? Do you want me to
eat your pussy the way you ate mine?" Marcia played the role.  
  
Carol couldn't believe what she was hearing and yes her soaking wet pussy was
in need of some attention. Marcia took charge and pushed Carol to her back.
Marcia pushed Carol's tight skirt above her waist exposing the tops of her
stockings, garters and silk panties. Carol had started to wear her panties
over her garters so that she could have quick access to her cunt as needed.  
  
Marcia slid Carol's panties down and off her hips and legs. Marcia then dove
right in and began sucking Carol's twat. "Am I doing it right," Marcia asked
teasing her mother.  
  
"Oh yes, oh yes you are!" cried Carol.  
  
Marcia gave Carol the same treatment that she had received as she sucked on
Carol's cunt and fingered her asshole and pussy. Carol was beside herself as
she came and came and came.  
  
Carol was as drained emotionally and sexually from the seduction as the sex
itself. Marcia then undressed her mother removing all remaining clothes.
Marcia then stripped herself naked and crawled back in bed with her mother.
The two of them moved into a 69 position and ate each other through another
round of orgasms creaming each other's face with sweet nectar. Carol and
Marcia hugged each other and kissed each other for several more minutes. At
that moment Marcia felt that she truly loved her mother and she would look
forward to many more tender loves sessions. Carol also felt marvelous as she
was so happy that she and her daughter had finally broken through the taboo
barrier. Carol would look to Marcia for incestuous love sessions in the future
but she knew she could always turn to the other mothers and coaches for the
raw sex that she often craved.  
  
As Carol and Marcia cuddled and professed their love for one another, Anna was
getting it on with Lauren and her mother Shirley. The three of them were in
Shirley's bed and Lauren was sitting on her mother's face as Anna had her
tongue shoved up Lauren's ass. Lauren loved the dual tongue attention in her
ass and pussy. It didn't take long before she was squirting her juices in her
mother's mouth. The rest of the night the three engaged in numerous sexual
compilations and positions. Each of them took turns being in the middle as
their ass and pussy were fucked by the other two wearing strap-on dildos. They
fucked each other well into the night and exhausted they finally fell asleep
in each other's arms.  
  
SUNDAY MORNING AND SEXUAL BLISS  
  
Maria stood in front of the bathroom mirror surveying her body. She held her
firm breasts up with her hands and pushed her pelvis forward toward the
vanity. Janet slipped out of her bed and walked up behind Maria and replaced
Maria's hands cupping her breasts and twirling her nipples. Maria sighed and
leaned back into Janet. Maria's hands reached behind Janet, grasped her
buttocks and pulled her closer. Janet gently caressed Maria's tits and tweaked
her nipples.  
  
"I love you Maria," Janet whispered into Maria's ear.  
  
Maria sighed and whispered back, "I love you too Janet but this is very
dangerous ground for us."  
  
"We can handle it though, I know we can," Janet replied and then, "Come back
to bed Maria."  
  
"No Janet I really need to shower," Maria said reluctantly as she briefly
reflected on the beautiful sex they had last night.  
  
"Mind if I join you?" Janet asked.  
  
"No of course not, please do," Maria answered.  
  
The two teachers / coaches entered the shower and relaxed under the warm
cascade of water. Then they began to wash each other's body. They both got
turned on again as they seemed to be insatiable. Janet pushed Maria back
against the shower wall and smiled wickedly at her as she dropped slowly to
her knees. As Janet spread Maria's legs she moaned out loud. Maria had to bite
her lip to stifle her gasps as she felt Janet's hot breath on her pussy. Janet
placed delicate kisses upon Maria's naked thighs and the sensation of Janet's
wet lips on Maria's warm skin sent shockwaves of excitement through her. Janet
ran a fingertip down Maria's slit and she groaned with pleasure as Janet's
fingers honed in on Maria's now swollen clit.  
  
Janet inhaled the sweet odor of Maria's pussy savoring the musky smell and
then her tongue darted out and lapped excitedly at Maria's pussy. Next Janet
pulled Maria's pussy lips open to expose every fold of her pink pussy. Janet
darted her tongue in and out of Maria's now dripping cunt using the tongue
like a little cock. Janet used her thumb to rub Maria's clit as she dipped her
fingers into Maria's soaking pussy. Janet got one finger nice and wet and then
slid it into Maria's tight asshole. Janet sucked Maria's clit into her hot
mouth as she slid several fingers into Maria's pussy and one into her ass.
Maria groaned as Janet pleasured her and soon the intensity in Maria's ass,
pussy and clit built up to a boiling point. Maria came noisily and her juices
spilt from her and into Janet's awaiting mouth.  
  
Next Maria turned Janet so that she was spread-eagled with her hands against
the wall of the shower. Maria watched as the rivulets of water from the shower
coursed down over Janet's beautiful body and ran between her legs. Maria
placed gentle kisses over Janet's body beginning at her shoulders and kissing
downward across her back to her curvy firm ass. Maria began to lick and kiss
Janet's hips planting kisses all over her creamy smooth sensitive skin. Maria
couldn't help from gently nibbling the cheeky flesh of Janet's ass. Janet gave
off a playful yelp and wiggled her bottom in delight. As Maria kissed the
inside of Janet's thighs she heard Janet groan with passion and Maria's mouth
moved steadily up Janet's thighs toward her pussy.  
  
Maria loved the smell of Janet's pussy and she was desperate to taste her
again. Maria sat between Janet's legs and probed the luscious pussy gently
with her tongue licking Janet's clit, which swelled immediately to Maria's
touch. Next Maria enveloped Janet's clit in her mouth and rolled it between
her teeth emitting squeals of delight from Janet. That was the signal Maria
wanted to hear as she drove Janet wild. Maria continued eating Janet, licking
her and probing her tight sweet hole. Then Maria slipped a finger into Janet's
dripping pussy and finger fucked her while she sucked and nibbled on Jane's
swollen clit.  
  
Maria felt Janet's clit swell and stiffen. Janet then grabbed Maria's hair and
forced the tongue deeper inside her. She ground her clit against Maria and her
body quaked in orgasm. Janet's breathing and moaning became more
uncontrollable as she continued to push against Maria's face. Janet ground her
pussy against Maria and came all over her face. Maria hungrily sucked up
Janet's juices and both of them stayed under the water for a few more minutes
relishing their recent pleasure before leaving the shower.  
  
The two beauties emerged from the shower and toweled each other off pausing
briefly to kiss each other. Then they both got dressed and headed out for
breakfast. A continental breakfast with café lattes was the perfect way to cap
off the morning. As Janet and Maria enjoyed their lattes, Vicki had just
awakened in Stephie's bed.  
  
Vicki looked over at the beautiful naked German women and she assumed that her
daughter Wendy had slept with the twins. Vicki reflected on the previous
night's sexual orgy and found herself to be somewhat embarrassed at her
participation in such lewd and perverted acts. Vicki had initially enjoyed the
female love encounters but now she felt herself slipping into a world of
depravity. The wicked things that she and her daughter did to each other and
with the Kesler's last night just seemed beyond her expectations. Vicki
slipped quietly out of bed and made her way down to the Jacuzzi. She was still
naked as she slipped her aching body into the warm refreshing bubbly water.
Vicki laid her head back and closed her eyes as she recalled the activities of
the previous night.  
  
The evening started out fine with Vicki and Stephie eating each other in a 69
position as the twins and Wendy engaged in a ménage a trois eating each
other's pussy. Then things started to get a little bizarre. Vicki was double
fucked by the twins as she ate her daughter's pussy. Stephie fucked Wendy in
the ass as her pussy was eaten by her mother. Later Vicki and Wendy fucked
each other with a double dildo as they were fucked in the ass by the twins.
After that the double dildo was placed in Wendy's and Vicki's assholes and
they lay back to back fucking each other's ass as Gretchen and Erica fucked
Wendy's and Vicki's pussies with double dildos. There seemed to be no end to
the number of positions that the Kessler family could dream up for Vicki and
her daughter. However, the most bizarre compilation was when Vicki licked
Gretchen's asshole and Wendy licked Erica's asshole while Stephie wearing a
strap-on took turns fucking Vicki and Wendy in the ass.  
  
Vicki's hands drifted under the spa water and located her warm pussy and erect
clit. As she recalled the sexual perversions of the previous night she found
herself turned on once again. Vicki ran one hand over her stiff nipples as she
fingered herself to an orgasm in the Jacuzzi. Unbeknown to Vicki was that
Stephie had joined her daughters in their bedroom and that the three of them
were fucking Wendy again.  
  
THE WEEK AHEAD  
  
Monday it was back to school and back to practice. This Tuesday the Lady
Cougars were playing a team that they handily beat the first time but Maria
was still guarded against overconfidence. After Tuesday's game they had a
tough away game against Glenbrook and it was a must win situation for
Glenbrook. Lincoln South had two relatively easy games this week but then they
faced Glenbrook the following week and then it would be the showdown with
Ridgeway.  
  
As expected Ridgeway, Glenbrook and Lincoln South all won their games on
Tuesday. Maria however was concerned that the Cougars had played a sloppy game
and she cautioned them that if they played that way against Glenbrook they
would be in trouble. Maria held a very tough practice session on Wednesday and
then strategic session on Thursday. Maria's philosophy was not to work the
girls hard the day before a game as she wanted them to be as fresh as
possible.  
  
Following Thursday's practice Maria and Janet went to dinner and then to
Janet's place to discuss the game plan for Friday. As they sat around talking
about the game Janet suggested that they get more comfortable.  
  
"There is no point sitting around all bound up in these school clothes. I'll
get us something more comfortable to wear," Janet offered.  
  
"Do we need to bother with clothes at all?" Maria quipped.  
  
Janet smiled and answered, "Of course not. They won't stay on too long
anyway."  
  
"My thoughts exactly," Maria laughed.  
  
The two pretty women shed their clothes and cuddled up on Janet's sofa. They
stroked each other's tits and fingered each other's pussy as they discussed
the game plan for Friday. Soon they were both worked up and they made their
way into Janet's bed.  
  
"Maria I want you to fuck me tonight," Janet requested as she handed Maria the
strap-on harness and dildo.  
  
Maria put on the black harness and snapped the imposing flesh colored dildo in
place. Smiling at Janet Maria got between her legs and positioned the fake
cock at the entrance to Janet's pussy. Janet groaned when she felt the head
nestle at her opening.  
  
"Relax," Maria cooed. Janet nodded her head and took a deep breath, then
slowly let it out. The Spanish woman pressed forward slowly with her hips and
Janet felt the head slip into her, but it quickly became too wide and the
forward progress stopped. Janet felt the muscles at the entrance to her pussy
clenching, fighting to keep the intruder out. Maria kept up the slow steady
pressure and Janet felt her muscles begin to give, slowly, inexorably the head
of the massive phallus entered, stretching her open. The head slipped past the
wall of constricting muscle and her inner lips closed upon the thick shaft.  
  
Janet felt full to the point of bursting, but her pussy also tingled and
itched, sending demanding signals to her brain that she needed more. Maria
proved to be a very thoughtful lover; she held her hips still and let Janet
adjust to the big cock before she slowly pressed forward again. The blunt head
of the dildo slid deeper into her, forcing aside the tight tissues of her
inner channel. Janet gasped and Maria instantly stopped. She felt positively
stuffed and opened her eyes to gaze down her body. Janet was shocked to see
she barely had two inches below the head inside her. Maria began to slowly
rock her hips, not thrusting forward as yet, but moving in an even motion that
withdrew a few centimeters of the big cock and then pushed it back in. Janet's
body jerked like a marionette on a string each time the forward progress of
the big dick was halted by her inner walls.  
  
With infinite patience and care Maria worked her big cock into Janet's
quivering pussy. Maria's eyes were glued to Janet's sex. It was so erotic to
watch the pink lips settle around her shaft, to see the sticky wetness coating
the shaft when she withdrew and to feel the inner muscles giving way at last.
Finally the big cock came to rest with only an inch still outside Janet's pink
lips. Maria just looked down, letting the sight and smell of Janet's arousal
work on her senses. Janet was totally lost in sensation and she could feel the
huge cock, feel the head resting in a place nothing had ever touched before.
Her inner muscles spasmed around the big head and Janet thoroughly believed
she could feel each vein and ridge on the big cock.  
  
Maria slowly withdrew her cock and then stabbed it back in, the motion was
slow and gentle, allowing Janet to get used to it before she really went to
town on this lovely woman. Maria was a patient lover and kept the slow rhythm
until she saw Janet's hips begin to thrust back to meet her. The whole length
of the big cock was coated in her juices now and it seemed that the friction
had abated. With that reassurance Maria wrapped her arms around Janet's thighs
and holding her tight she lengthened her strokes and picked up the tempo.  

Heaven that was the only word Janet's lust clouded brain could find for the
myriad of sensations that rocked her. The huge dildo stretched and filled her
as never before. Each stroke produced tiny sounds in her throat that escaped
as whimpers and little cries of passion mixed in with her ragged breathing.
Maria was still fucking her slowly as her hips seemed to roll upwards with
each thrust, not only driving the dildo deeply into her, but also scraping the
entire length of the shaft along her clit as it entered. Jagged pleasure
ripped through her body, driving her ever upwards into a red cloud of pure
bliss. She tossed her head from side to side and had a death grip on the
comforter when her orgasm blasted her mind. The contractions were so strong
they seemed to squeeze the very breath from her lungs and the pleasure so
intense she bit her lip to keep from screaming. Through it all Maria never
slowed, but actually picked up the pace, driving in with more and more force
until Janet felt her breath leave her body with each thrust.  
  
The first orgasm was still rippling though her consciousness when a second
even more shattering peak arrived. Janet cried out and her back arched until
only her shoulder blades were touching the mattress.  
  
"Fuck, fuck, fuck," she chanted in time to the driving dildo's assaults.  
  
She was totally lost in pleasure, her very being seemed to be tied to the cock
that was filling her to the brim. Janet came down slowly, only to realize she
was still being fucked. Maria increased the tempo, working the big dildo into
Janet's twitching cunt with clocklike regularity. She was unused to the
stimulation continuing and a series of minor orgasms rocked her slight frame.
The pleasure became so intense her mind began to misfire, things took on a
strange, almost dream like quality. The squishing sounds of the dildo entering
and the rhythmic slap of Maria's thighs on the backs of her own became very
loud. The room was covered in a red haze and she had to squint to make out
Maria's form, holding tightly to her thighs. She felt another orgasm building
this one would be no small affair she could tell.  
  
Without warning her pussy spasmed and her inner muscles clenched the heavy
shaft, the raw pleasure that assaulted her brain and nerves was beyond the
scope of any orgasm she had ever had and she must have blacked out momentarily
for when she became aware again Maria withdrew the huge cock with an obscene
popping sound. The beautiful Spanish girl crawled up onto the bed and lay down
on her side with her head propped up on her hand. She smiled down at Janet and
playfully kissed her nose.  
  
"God, you're a great fuck Janet," Maria said in a husky voice.  
  
Janet looked at on her new face and shaking off a final shiver she managed to
smile and say, "That was incredible,"  
  
" I'm glad you enjoyed it," Maria said with a smile.  
  
"Enjoyed it? I wish it would not have ended," Janet said. Her voice sounded
strange in her ears, still thick with desire.  
  
"Okay my turn," Maria said.  
  
Maria took off the harness and handed it to Janet. Janet slipped on the
harness and looked at the big phallus still glistening with her cunt juice.
Juice lay on her back and allowed Maria to straddle her and lower her pussy
onto the fake cock. She grasped the faux cock and brought it to her entrance,
feeling it slide into her already well-stretched hole. Again the head stuck
after only a part of it was inside. Maria didn't care, just feeling it there
again reignited her passion and she wanted only to be impaled on it as quickly
as possible. She carefully brought her leg down until she was perched on both
of her knees, she could feel her muscles straining as her weight slowly
shifted and she began to sink on the big dildo.  
  
Maria gasped when the head slipped past her entrance. Inch by inch she slowly
enveloped the hard latex until she felt her lips rest on the black leather of
the harness. Maria looked down, amazed that she had taken it all. She felt
vaguely uncomfortable being so full, but also very hot. Janet's hands slipped
to her hips and rested there lightly. Maria pressed up with her legs
experimentally and felt the big dildo stir within her. Maria's hips began to
undulate making the big cock slide in and out slightly, but also brushing the
top of her bush against Janet's harness. As the wonderful friction built she
felt a spasm pass through her body, her hands reached out and grasped Janet's
arms as she began to plunge wildly on the petite woman's lap. A moan escaped
her lips and another shudder tore through her. She had not counted on her body
still being sensitized and it seemed she was picking up right were she left
off.  
  
Janet pulled her legs up until her feet were firmly planted on the bed, her
grasp on Maria's hips became tight and without warning she brutally thrust her
hips upward. The wild thrust took Maria's breath away, but before she could
recover a second and then a third followed it. Janet seemed unwilling to sit
still and let Maria do all the work and soon the room was filled with the
liquid sounds of the dildo juicing into Maria's wet hole and the groans,
grunts and moans of both women.  
  
She sat straight up and then leaned back, resting her arms on Janet's knees
and then went wild. Maria crashed down on Janet's lap to meet each up thrust,
mewling like a cat and babbling incoherently. Janet's eyes were closed and her
breath hissed between clenched teeth.  
  
"God, you're such a sexy woman you're going to make me cum too you gorgeous
slut," Janet cried out.  
  
The words fueled Maria's passion to an even greater height if that was
possible. Maria felt another orgasm building quickly, but she wanted the
petite assistant coach to cum with her. Seeing how Janet's eyes never left her
chest Maria decided to add to the woman's visual stimulation, but she knew she
had to hurry because she could not long hold off her own climax.  
  
Maria's hands flew to her firm breasts and she cupped them in both hands as if
offering them to Janet. Janet's eyes seemed glued to the wildly bouncing
globes and with a loud bark her hands clamped deeply onto Maria's hips. She
tensed and then thrust upward with such force that her back and ass were
lifted off the bed. Maria's pussy spasmed around the large cock so deeply
imbedded in her and the first contractions of an orgasm that dwarfed others
hit her. The pleasure was too intense and for a time she rode on an endless
sea of bliss, each wave sending her further and further from reality. Janet's
and Maria's voices called out endearments and professions of love.  
  
Maria had collapsed forward onto Janet's chest and the petite woman was
holding her tightly. The big cock was still buried in her pussy and she could
not stop her body from quivering. When Janet's hand stroked her ass she
groaned softly. Her body was still too sensitive; even such a simple caress
sent bright lights flaring into her mind. Janet seemed to understand and
helped Maria dismount. As soon as she was free of the big dildo she rolled up
into a fetal position and closed her eyes.  
  
Janet curled up behind Maria and reached around her to caress her big firm
tits and eraser hard nipples. Maria felt Janet's firm tits press into her back
and she also felt the dildo nestle in the crack of her ass. The two beautiful
teachers lay together for several more minutes before they finally sat up.
They had been making love for over three hours.  
  
Maria and Janet showered together and lovingly washed each other's body. They
took turns eating each other in the shower before they finally dried off and
got dressed. Maria put her school clothes back on and Janet put on her
sleepwear. They kissed each other goodnight and Maria left for her house. As
Maria drove home another woman was thinking about Maria as well.  
  
The sports columnist for the local paper was in bed fantasizing about Maria.
She had covered all the games so far and she loved being able to interview
Maria after the games. She secretly wished that Maria was a lesbian so that
she could put the moves on her. However Charlotte or Charly as they called her
in the office was very guarded about her preference for women and the last
thing she needed was for an irate coach to call her Editor. For now Charly was
content to finger herself to an orgasm as she fantasized about Maria.  
  
FRIDAY AND THE BIG GAME WITH GLENBROOK  
  
Maria had anticipated that Glenbrook would play a very defensive game so she
started her fastest players. As it turned out Ridgeway's speed proved too much
for Glenbrook and the first half ended with Ridgeway leading 1-0. In the
second half Maria returned to the normal lineup and the two teams slugged it
out with both of them scoring a goal each. With the score 2-1 in favor of
Ridgeway in the closing minutes Glenbrook pulled their goalie in and effort to
tie the game. With less than a minute left in the game Lauren broke free and
kicked the ball into an empty Glenbrook goal giving Ridgeway a hard earned 3-1
victory. Glenbrook was a class program and the coaches and players each
congratulated the Ridgeway coaches and players at the end of the game.  
  
After her post game chat with her team Maria turned to the sports writers for
post game questions. Janet joined Maria and they both handled the questions
from the sports writers. They tactfully avoided any predictions about next
Friday's game with Lincoln South except to say that they were expecting a
tough game as Lincoln was a very talented team. When asked if they were
concerned about the officiating Maria scoffed at the question and firmly
stated that the officiating had been fine and it didn't affect any of the
outcomes so far this season and that she didn't expect that to change. Charly
stayed later than the other reporters and asked if she could interview Maria.  
  
"Maria is a little tired now why don't you come over to my place later this
evening if you're not busy and you can interview both of us if you like,"
Janet offered.  
  
"I would love to do that. Are you sure it is okay?" Charly replied trying to
hide her excitement.  
  
"Sure that will give Maria and me time to freshen up, grab a quick bite and
then relax for awhile," Janet replied.  
  
"Can I bring something?" Charly offered.  
  
"Some wine if you like but it is not necessary," Janet told her but secretly
thought just bring your hot little body and we'll see what happens.  
  
"Wine it is then, I'll see you about 8:00 PM okay?" Charly confirmed.  
  
"Eight o'clock is fine we'll see you then," Janet concluded.  
  
As soon as Charly was out of range Maria asked, "Why did you invite her over?"  
  
"It will be good press for the school plus I think that we will have some fun.
Didn't you notice the way she looked at you? She couldn't take her eyes off of
you. I bet she is gay," Janet replied.  
  
"Well let's go slow we don't need any bad press," Maria cautioned.  
  
Janet and Maria returned to Janet's home and showered together before grabbing
a quick bite and then relaxing with a glass of wine. They both dressed in tee
shirts and jogging shorts without panties and they remained barefooted. They
were two very alluring young women as they lounged around sipping their wine.  
  
THE POST GAME INTERVIEW  
  
At eight o'clock sharp the doorbell rang and Janet answered it and let Charly
into her home. Charly was dressed in jeans and a light sweater and she had
brought a bottle of wine as promised. Janet led Charly into her family room
where Maria was already seated on the sofa. Janet sat at the other end of the
sofa after pouring Charly a glass of wine and offering her a seat across from
her and Maria.  
  
Charly raised her glass in a toast as her heart was pounding just from looking
at the two beautiful coaches. Her eyes took in their beautiful shapely legs
and she felt a stirring in her loins. Charly tried to keep herself composed
but inwardly she wanted to throw herself between Maria's thighs, strip off her
shorts and plunge her mouth on the Spanish woman's pussy.  
  
Charly began the interview and it actually went very well. She covered the
Ridgeway Lady Cougars season to date as she learned Maria's coaching
philosophy. Maria was very complimentary of Janet as her assistant and she
talked about the dedication of the girls, their work ethic and commitment to
being a successful team. Maria also told Charly how the mothers got together
and formed a club to support the team. Charly noticed that Janet had moved a
few times during the interview and each time Charly's eyes were diverted to
Janet's shapely legs. The last move by Janet had caused the shorts to ride up
in her crotch to one side and reveal that she was not wearing panties.  
  
Charly stared briefly at Janet's pussy lips peaking out one side of her shorts
as she thought to herself, "Oh my God she's not wearing panties, I wonder if
Maria is wearing panties."  
  
Janet spotted the reporter's reaction and smiled to herself as she thought to
herself, "Got you!"  
  
Janet noticed that Charly's wine was almost gone so she got up and refilled
the glass. Charly could hardly contain herself as Janet approached her and
poured the wine. When Janet returned to her seat she made sure that her shorts
were pulled to the side and her entire pussy was on display.  
  
Charly wrapped up the interview with Maria and Janet and then said in a shaky
voice, "Well I have taken enough of your time, so I'll be on my way. Thank you
for allowing me to interview you both."  
  
"You don't have to rush off Charly. Maria and I are just going to hang out and
drink some wine so you are welcome to stay and hang with us if you like.
Unless you have other plans," Janet offered.  
  
"No, no other plans but I don't want to impose," Charly replied.  
  
"It's no imposition really so just relax and enjoy the wine," Janet offered.  
  
"Yes Charly, do stay for awhile," Maria added.  
  
That did it for Charly and she decided to stay and hang out with the two
beautiful soccer coaches. The three girls chatted about their backgrounds,
college, growing up etc. and the conversation flowed smoothly. Charly was
getting more comfortable with Janet and Maria and the wine was also taking
effect. Maria had noticed that Janet shorts were pulled to side to bare her
pussy and she knew that Janet had done that to test the water with Charly.
Maria had had enough wine by now and became a little bolder as she too pulled
her shorts to the side and bared her pussy lips. The next time Charly looked
toward Maria she emitted a small but audible gasp as she spotted Maria's bare
pussy. Charly looked at Maria's patch of black pubic hair and then looked back
a Janet's light colored tuft. She could feel her own pussy heating up as her
eyes moved from one coach's pussy to the other.  
  
Janet spoke snapping Charly out of her temporary trance, "So Charly, are you
seeing anyone or dating anyone these days or does your work keep you too
busy?"  
  
Charly fumbled with her reply, "No, I haven't been dating and I am not seeing
anybody these days."  
  
"That's strange I would have thought that a pretty girl like you would have
the guys at work chasing after you," Maria added.  
  
"Well that's if you are into guys, are you?" Janet asked directly.  
  
Charly blushed and shook her head no and then spoke, "No, I used to date guys
but then I found that I enjoyed my time with women more than men."  
  
"I thought you were showing some interest in us particularly Maria, am I
right?" Janet asked again.  
  
"Yes how could I ignore you both with your beautiful legs on display and then
your pussies exposed to me," Charly gasped.  
  
"I bet you would like to eat Maria's pussy right now wouldn't you Charly,"
Janet said continuing to torment the reporter.  
  
"Come to me Charly so that you can see my pussy better and play with it, if
you like," Maria beckoned the young girl.  
  
Charly got up and walked over to Maria and knelt in between her legs. Then she
reached up and grasped Maria's panties by the waistband and eased them down
and off her legs. Charly then lowered her mouth to Maria's pussy and tasted
the sweet nectar. Maria threw her head back and closed her eyes as the
reporter's talented tongue did its job. Charly inserted first one then two
fingers into Maria's pussy as her tongue then searched for Maria's clit.
Charly was a very accomplished cunt lapper and she soon had Maria in an
excited state.  
  
Janet got off the sofa and removed her tee shirt and shorts. Then totally
naked she moved behind Charly and pulled the girl's sweater up and off her
body. Charly had nice firm titties with had little nubs and Janet rubbed them
and nuzzled the girl's neck. Charly felt Janet's tits press into her back and
she reached behind to locate Janet's pussy. Charly then fingered Janet's pussy
as she continued to eat Maria's snatch. Charly had both her hands and tongue
busy with the sexy soccer coaches and she felt her own loins heating up with
desire.  
  
Maria's body stiffened and then thrashed about as she came on Charly's tongue
and fingers. Charly kept right on eating her and fingering her until Maria
stopped cumming. Janet then quickly moved to the sofa so that Charly could eat
her.  
  
"Eat me Charly, I'm so close, please hurry!" Janet begged as she spread
herself for the reporter.  
  
Charly dove right in and in no time she had Janet squirming around on her
tongue and fingers. Janet grabbed Charly's head as she came and thrust her
pussy into the new lover's mouth. Charly gobbled up every drop of Janet female
love juice and then licked her fingers clean of the nectar. Charly looked at
the two beautiful naked soccer coaches splayed before her and she could not
believe her good fortune.  
  
"Charly that was quite something, you are very good at that," Janet
complimented the girl and then directed, "Now let's take this into my bedroom
where we can all get comfortable and Maria and I can reciprocate."  
  
The half naked Charly followed the naked coaches into Janet's bedroom where
she was stripped of her jeans and panties. Charly lay on her back on Janet's
bed and waited for the dual attention from her new found lovers. Janet slid
between Charly's legs and slipped her tongue into the hot moist pussy. Maria
played with Charly's tits and sucked on hard erect nubs. Charly was so hot
that she came immediately surprising the two girls and herself with the quick
orgasm.  
  
"I know that there is plenty more where that came from," Janet told Charly and
then told her, "Sit on Maria's face this time."  
  
Maria rolled over on her back and welcomed Charly's pussy onto her mouth.
Janet got behind Charly again and fondled her tits. Janet then kissed her way
down Charly's back to her buttocks causing Charly to shiver in delight. Janet
played with Charly's shapely ass and ran her finger between the buttocks. Then
Janet pried Charly's ass cheeks apart and used her tongue to tickle the
reporter's nether hole. Charly went wild with the simultaneous dual tonguing
of her pussy and asshole. Charly's body was shaking in ecstasy and she felt a
massive orgasm approaching.  
  
"Cum for us Charly, cum for us," Janet said as she rimmed the reporter.  
  
Charly came and came as her body went into convulsions. She flooded Maria's
mouth with a copious amount of female cum and she screamed loudly as the
climax rocked her body. Charly collapsed face down with her pussy still on top
of Maria's face. Janet continued to rim Charly's asshole. Then Janet put some
lube on her finger and probed Charly's asshole. Charly just laid still and
cooed as Janet pushed one then two fingers into the girl's asshole. Charly had
been butt fucked before but it had been awhile since she had anything in her
ass, however, the anal penetration felt good to her at this moment.  
  
Janet and Maria decided against using any dildos on Charly. As much as they
wanted to fuck her they didn't want to move to fast on their new lover. They
invited Charly to spend the night and Charly enthusiastically accepted. The
rest of the night they all made tender love to one another with lips and
fingers until they the three of them were exhausted and fell asleep in Janet's
bed.  

SATURDAY MORNING SURPRISE  
  
Gretchen and Erica decided to stop by school Saturday morning to pick up some
stuff from their locker. They ventured over the athletic office to see if any
of the coaches had come in that morning. The office was closed and everything
was locked up tight. Satisfied that no one was there, Gretchen and Erica
started to leave but then they heard voices. Actually they heard moans coming
from the locker room area. They quietly worked their way down the stairs and
then they spotted Amanda and Christy.  
  
Amanda and Christy had also come by the school to get some things from their
lockers but they had gotten a little frisky in the process. Amanda and Christy
both had their shorts and panties pushed down to their knees. They were finger
fucking each other as they French kissed and they were unaware of anything
else. Gretchen and Erica watched the two girls until the both orgamsed. Amanda
and Christy both licked their fingers clean and were just about to pull up
their shorts and panties when Gretchen and Erica made their presence known.  
  
"Well you two certainly seemed to enjoy yourselves this morning," Gretchen
said startling the two lovers.  
  
"Oh no, how long have you been there watching us?" a shaken Christy asked.  
  
"Long enough to watch you two get off on each other's fingers," laughed Erica.  
  
"Please don't tell anyone," Christy pleaded.  
  
"I tell you what why don't you two join Erica and I at our home and we will
talk about it," Gretchen suggested.  
  
"But I told my Mom that we would be right back this morning," Amanda offered.  
  
"Well then just call her and tell her that we ran into each other and that we
are going to hang out for awhile," Erica countered.  
  
Amanda and Christy finally agreed to meet the twins at their home so the four
of them then left the school. Amanda and Christy talked as they drove over to
the Kessler's house and they hoped that something could be worked out so that
the twins wouldn't tell everyone what they witnessed. In the other car Erica
and Gretchen couldn't believe their good fortune knowing that they would add
two more players to their conquests.  
  
_NEXT CHAPTER  
  
The next chapter will finish out the season and head into the playoffs. The
soccer mom's club will have a special get together to plan a party in the
team's honor. The newspaper reporter will learn even more from Janet and Maria
and the Kessler twins will get to know Amanda and Christy very well. _




        Lesbian Soccer Moms Ch. 06


**Final Chapter**  
  
INTRODUCTION  
  
This is the final chapter. As I wrote this series I tried to incorporate most
of the suggestions I received from readers. I hope most of you enjoyed it and
although I did receive some negative public comments the e-mails were very
supportive. Thanks for your feedback.  
  
A BUSY SATURDAY AFTERNOON  
  
Saturday afternoon Amanda and Christy arrived at the Kesler's house as agreed.
They were surprised to see the twin's mother at home and at first they just
assumed that she was on her way out. However Stephie politely excused herself
and retired to her own room as the girls headed for the twins room. Once they
were in the bedroom Gretchen instructed the two pretty girls to undress each
other slowly and to fold each piece of clothing neatly and place it on the
chair.  
  
Amanda and Christy assumed they had no choice but to follow the twin's
instructions in order to win their trust and silence. Amanda undressed Christy
with painstaking slowness and she had Christy's pussy throbbing in
anticipation. Gretchen and Erica watched intently as Amanda removed every
article of Christy's clothes until the girl was standing in the room naked.
Then Christy undressed Amanda and she soon had her friend as naked as her.
They stood together admiring each other's naked beauty in the presence of
their teammates. Gretchen instructed the girl's to embrace and caress each
other's body.  
  
The two pretty teenagers stepped close to one another and wrapped their arms
around the other's body. They French kissed each other deeply as their tongues
danced around in the other's mouth. The small breasts pressed against each
other's as their hands caressed their backs and worked their way down to their
shapely asses. The girls ground their pubic mounds together as they cupped
each other's ass cheeks moaning in each other's mouth. The two girls were a
picture of erotica as they held, kissed and caressed one another. They looked
like two nymphets embracing in their natural wonder.  
  
Gretchen told Amanda that she should begin her descent on Christy and work her
way down to her girl friend's pussy. Amanda broke her kiss with Christy and
then slowly trailed her tongue and lips down Christy's body. Amanda took her
time and sucked on Christy's tits and taut nipples for quite some time before
moving to her tummy. Amanda tickled Christy's belly button with her tongue and
licked all around the sensitive area. Amanda finally reached Christy's pussy
and she found it to be dripping wet as she ran her tongue over the moist
vagina. Christy gasped out loud and grabbed Amanda's head for support as the
tongue danced over her hot twat. Amanda did as she had learned just in the
past week and worked her magic on Christy's pussy. Christy was moaning and
pressing her quim into Amanda's face as she experienced a string of orgasms.  
  
"I have got to get my clothes off this is making me way too hot," Erica sighed
and then quickly stripped.  
  
Gretchen was also taken by the erotic scene before her and elected to disrobe
as well. She and Erica sat back on the bedroom chair with their naked bodies
touching as they watched their pretty teammates make love to one another.
Without being told Christy repeated the action on her girlfriend and before
long Amanda was writhing, moaning and cumming. The two teenagers then stood
once again and kissed each other deeply tasting their juices mingled with each
other's.  
  
"Let's take this to my bed," Gretchen directed.  
  
The two twins and two teenagers moved to Gretchen's bed and Gretchen had
Amanda and Christy lay next to each other. Then Erica knelt between Amanda's
legs and lowered her mouth to the tasty teenage pussy. Gretchen did the same
with Christy and the twins knelt side by side as they ate their classmate's
pussies. It spite of the fact that they had just orgasmed, the pussy eating
skills of Gretchen and Erica were just too much for the young girls. They were
soon thrashing and groaning on the bed as Gretchen and Erica worked over their
young energetic pussies. The girls pushed their hips up toward trying to get
the twins tongues even deeper into their cunts. Almost simultaneously the two
teenagers screamed with the intensity of their orgasms. Gretchen and Erica
continued to lick their creaming pussies and nibble on their aroused clits as
they climaxed wildly. As the girls calmed a little Gretchen and Erica kissed
and licked around their pussies and inner thighs. The girls shivered with
delight as the tongues tickled them.  
  
Gretchen got off the bed and then returned with two strap-on dildos. Amanda
and Christy had never seen anything like them before but found them to be
awesome and imposing at the same time. Gretchen said that she would
demonstrate how they were used and with that said she moved between Erica's
legs and inserted the fake cock into her sister's pussy. Erica's pussy was so
wet that the dildo slid right in to the base and then Gretchen proceeded to
fuck her. Erica thrust her hips up to meet Gretchen's and the two of them
fucked hard toward their first orgasm. The nub of the dildo rubbed against
Gretchen's clit as the entire rod pummeled Erica's pussy.  
  
The two teenagers stared with their mouths open as they had never witnessed
anything like this in their life. The scene of their teammates fucking each
other was an incredible turn on for the young girls as they watched the twin's
tits slap together as Gretchen pounded Erica's pussy with the fake cock. Sub-
consciously the two girls rubbed their own pussies as they watched the twins
fuck themselves. Erica stiffened and screamed for Gretchen to hold her tight
as she orgasmed for the first time. Gretchen held Erica tight but she
continued to thrust into her sister's gushing pussy. Gretchen then had her own
orgasm brought on by the nub of the dildo rubbing against her clit. Amanda and
Christy were speechless as they had never witnessed anyone orgasm much less
fuck each other.  
  
Gretchen told Amanda and Christy that she wanted them to fuck her and Erica
with the fake cocks. Gretchen and Erica then helped the teenagers put on the
strap-on dildo and harness. The two girls giggled as they looked at each other
with their new found toys.  
  
"You have a dick," Christy said blushingly.  
  
"You do too," laughed Amanda as she reached over and stroked Christy's rubber
cock.  
  
Gretchen and Erica lay on their backs side by side and Gretchen urged the
pretty girls to fuck them. Amanda moved between Erica's legs and Christy got
between Gretchen's legs. The twins helped the girls guide the fake cocks into
their pussies and began moving their hips up to meet the teenager's
inexperienced thrusts. Amanda and Christy learned quickly and they soon had
established a rhythm fucking the two sisters. The girls soon felt the nubs on
the dildos rubbing against their own clits and they realized that they too
would experience yet another orgasm. It was so exciting for the young girls to
be fucking the twins that they leaned over to suck on their tits. Gretchen and
Erica in turn fondled their teammate's tits, tweaked their nipples and rolled
them in their fingertips.  
  
The entire room smelled of sex from the four dripping pussies. The four of
them were racing toward another string of orgasms as the four teenagers fucked
hard and fast. Amanda and Christy were rewarded for their enthusiastic efforts
as the dildo nubs rubbed their clits and kept them in a constant state of
arousal. They learned how to work their hips so that they could receive as
much pleasure as they were giving. Gretchen and Erica were beyond themselves
with lust and they felt their intense orgasms building in their wombs.
Gretchen and Erica screamed with joy as their orgasms took over their bodies.
They humped quickly and then collapsed back on the bed as their teammates
plowed their pussies with the fake cocks.  
  
Amanda and Christy removed the rubber dicks from the women's pussies and
looked at the dildos glistening with Gretchen's and Erica's juices. As if it
were the natural thing in the world Amanda and Christy moved into a 69
position and licked the female nectar off the two fake cocks. Gretchen and
Erica watched them do this and marveled at their new lover's initiative. The
two girls sucked the artificial cocks into their mouths and made a game out of
how deep they could take them. After they licked the dildos dry of Gretchen's
and Erica's cunt juice, the two teenagers sat up and blushed slightly as they
realized what they had just done.  
  
"Well you two girls are full of surprises," Gretchen said and then added, "But
I have another one for you."  
  
Gretchen retrieved a double headed dildo and handed it to the girls for their
inspection. Amanda and Christy curiously handled the imposing dildo. They ran
their hands up and down the big shaft and cupped the fake balls separating the
two cock heads. Erica and Gretchen smiled at their teammates as they explored
the impressive double dildo.  
  
"Okay let me show you what is next," Gretchen told them.  
  
Gretchen and Erica greased up their assholes as the girls watched. Then
Gretchen and Erica lay on their sides facing one another and they worked the
double dildo into their pussies. The two teenagers watched in awe as the
entire shaft at each end disappeared into the twin's pussies.  
  
"Now Christy and Amanda we want you to fuck us in the ass with your cocks,"
Gretchen directed.  
  
The two young girls looked mortified. They couldn't believe Gretchen's request
that she and Erica wanted these big rubber cocks in their ass. The girls
wondered how they could take the dildos in their asses particularly when their
pussies were stuffed with another rubber shaft.  
  
"Come on girls it is okay, we have done this before," Gretchen said assuredly.  
  
"Really we love it, just give it to us and fuck us hard," Erica added.  
  
Tentatively the two girls got behind Gretchen and Erica and lay on their
sides. They tenderly tried to push the fake cocks into the women's assholes
but they had a hard time as they were afraid of injuring the women. Gretchen
and Erica reached behind them and guided the dildos into their assholes and
encouraged the girls to fuck them hard and quick. Amanda moved closer to
Gretchen as the cock slid into her ass and Gretchen reached behind her and
pulled Amanda by her buttocks tightly against her. Amanda's pubes pressed into
Gretchen' ass as the fake dick went all the way up her rectum. Amanda could
once again felt the nub on the dildo work its magic on her clit and she began
to thrust her hips into Gretchen as she fucked her ass. Amanda reached around
and slid her hand between Erica and Gretchen and cupped Gretchen's tits.  
  
Almost the same scene was repeated between Christy and Erica and the two
teenagers were now fucking their new lover's asses with the same enthusiasm as
they had fucked their pussies earlier. The dildo nubs were doing their job as
Amanda and Christy rapidly fucked the two shapely asses of Gretchen and Erica.
Amanda was the first to cum and she shuddered and held Gretchen tightly as she
screamed out loud in ecstasy. Christy was right behind her and she buried her
head in Erica's shoulder to muffle her own screams as her body shook with the
intensity of her orgasm. Gretchen and Erica went right on fucking each other
with the double dildo until they too had mind shattering orgasms. The two
twins held onto the cute shapely bottoms of the teenagers as they thrashed
their hips together, shuddered, stiffened and coated the dildo with their
female juices.  
  
"Oh my God that was fantastic," cried Erica.  
  
"Oh you girls are so incredibly sexy," Gretchen gasped.  
  
The four of them lay still in the bed for awhile still coupled together with
the fake cocks. Gretchen told the teenagers to move first and slowly pull out
of her and Erica's ass. Amanda and Christy eased the strap-on cocks out of the
twin's asses and looked at them in disbelief. It was still hard to imagine
those big rubber cocks stuffed up Gretchen's and Erica's asses. Gretchen and
Erica then moved apart and removed the double dildo from their pussies.
Gretchen gathered up the fake cocks and took them to be washed thoroughly. As
Gretchen washed the dildo's Erica lay on her back between the two teenagers.
Christy and Amanda played with Erica tits as Erica diddled each girl's tight
little pussy.  
  
Gretchen returned to the bed and the four teenagers kissed and played with
each other's body for several more minutes. Eventually Amanda and Christy got
dressed and headed back to their homes.  
  
Stephie Kesler had been watching the entire erotic scene through the two way
mirror. She had stood completely naked at the mirror and had fondled her tits
and fingered herself through several mild orgasms. She was still extremely
horny and after Amanda and Christy departed she summoned her daughters to tend
to her needs. Gretchen and Erica put on the strap-on dildos and double fucked
their mother until Stephie could not cum anymore and begged her daughters to
stop fucking her.  
  
As Stephie and her daughters lay in bed as they calmed down from the
afternoon's intense sex sessions.  
  
"Well girls it looks like you were successful bringing some others into our
little club," Stephie told her daughters.  
  
"Oh mother and they were so delicious, so innocent until today and so
inexperienced. They are both still virgins but they are horny little imps,"
Erica said.  
  
"We will have to have you join us next time mother but I think that today you
might have scared them off," Gretchen added.  
  
"Yes I suppose you are right but I will look forward to tasting those little
morsels," Stephie replied to her daughters. "Now who should we take shopping
with us tomorrow," she then asked.  
  
"How about Marcia and her mother they are both pretty hot," Erica chimed in.  
  
"I'll say they both love to fuck and take cocks in both their holes. We could
have a lot of fun with them tomorrow," Gretchen added.  
  
"Excellent choice my dears, I haven't had Marcia yet and you two haven't had
her mother yet. Yes, we will change all that tomorrow," Stephie said with a
wicked smile. "In fact I'll call her right now," she then added as she swung
her legs out of bed.  
  
Stephie walked naked over to her phone and Erica and Gretchen embraced as she
made the call. After a brief conversation with Carol, Stephie hung up the
phone and told her daughters that it was all set and that they would pick
Carol and Marcia at 10:00 AM tomorrow morning. Stephie then climbed back in
bed with her daughters and they all embraced one another.  
  
At the other end Carol's pussy was already heating up in anticipation of
getting together with the Keslers. She knew shopping was just a preliminary
event to an afternoon of sex with the Kesler family. She couldn't wait to tell
Marcia when she got home from Lauren's house. Carol did not know that at that
very moment that her daughter Marcia was sandwiched between the petite body of
Lauren and the Amazon figure of Anna. Marcia was being skewered with two
strap-on dildos with Anna in her pussy and Lauren in her ass. The girls would
spend most of the afternoon taking turns being in the middle and being double
fucked.  
  
While all this was going on Vicki and her daughter Wendy were shopping at the
mall. Wendy ran off briefly to chat with some of her classmates and Vicki
decided to stop in the boutique where Shirley worked. Shirley was happy to see
Vicki and showed her some new outfits. The two women smiled at each other when
Shirley asked Vicky if she would like to try on some of the clothes. The two
of them entered the dressing room and within minutes Vicki was totally naked
with Shirley kneeling between her thighs and licking her pussy. Vicki came
quickly and then returned the favor. Shirley could not be caught naked in the
store so she lifted her dress and pulled her panties to the side so that Vicki
could eat her pussy. Shirley too came quickly and then tidied herself up.  
  
Wendy had come into the boutique to find her mother. Vicki giggled and told
her daughter what had just happened. Wendy got hot just thinking about her
mother being naked in the dressing room getting her pussy licked. Vicki smiled
at her and then steered her back into the dressing room and asked Shirley to
join them. Shirley came in and locked the door as Wendy and her mother
stripped off their clothes. Shirley was all over the pretty teenager as she
started with the girl's breasts and kissed her way down to her pussy. Shirley
licked Wendy's pussy and sucked on her clit as Vicki stood behind her daughter
and fondled her tits.  
  
Wendy went wild as Vicki played with her daughter's tits and pressed her own
tits into her daughter's back. Shirley frantically licked the teenager's twat
and then she inserted a wet finger into Wendy's asshole. Just the thought of
this going on in a public place had the three of them in an erotic state and
in didn't take long for Wendy to gush her nectar into Shirley's mouth. Shirley
drank down every drop of the teenager's love potion and then stood and kissed
both Wendy and Vicki. Shirley left the mother and daughter in the dressing
room and returned to her shop duties.  
  
Wendy and Vicki both dressed and then left the boutique. They hurried out of
the mall and drove home as quickly as they could. Once in the house they both
stripped off their clothes and settled in Vicki's bed for an afternoon of
lesbian love.  
  
SUNDAY BEFORE THE FINAL REGULAR SEASON GAMES  
  
Maria and Janet had spent Saturday night in Janet's bed making passionate love
as had been the case for many nights by now. This morning they woke up and
made love in the shower, soaping each other's body, fingering each other's
holes and finally eating each other's pussy. They finished their showers,
threw on their terrycloth robes and had breakfast. Maria and Janet adjourn to
the family room after breakfast with a pot of coffee and relaxed reading the
Sunday paper. The sports section contained a small article about the upcoming
game with Lincoln South and the importance of it to the Ridgeway soccer
program.  
  
"How are we going to play them this time Maria? You know they will be fired
up," asked Janet.  
  
"It really depends on the weather but it is supposed to be clear that day. I
think our girls are just as good if not better then they are. I couldn't say
that at the beginning of the season but I can now," Maria stated and then
added, "I think we will attack them right from the start."  
  
"Really!" exclaimed Janet in surprise.  
  
"Yes they will be expecting us to play it conservative and play not to lose.
So I say we put our quickest lineup on the field and go right after them,"
Maria replied confidently.  
  
"You don't think that is too risky?" Janet questioned.  
  
"Everything is risky but I believe we can catch them off guard. Also I believe
it makes a statement to our team that we have confidence in them. No trickery
this time we will just take it to them," Maria affirmed.  
  
"I love it," cried Janet and then leaned over and kissed Maria.  
  
"Careful you are liable to give me a hard-on," Maria quipped and they both
laughed out loud.  
  
"Speaking of a hard-on, I want you to take me back to bed and fuck my brains
out," Janet squealed.  
  
"It will be my pleasure you little tart," Maria replied as she slapped Janet
on the ass as they made their way back to the bedroom.  
  
They two beauties dropped their robes on the floor and got into bed. Janet
retrieved the strap-on from her night stand and handed it to Maria. Maria
slipped on the fake cock and then got between her lovers thighs and slipped it
into her hot pussy. The two coaches took turns fucking each other the rest of
the morning and professed their love for one another.  
  
Across town the scene was a little different as Stephie Kesler drove her
daughters along with Carol and Marcia back to her house. The five of them had
decided to stop for some café lattes and then agreed to forgo the shopping
trip. As they drove back to the Kesler's home Marcia was groaning in the back
of the car and for good reason. She was seated between the twins and her
sweater and bra were pushed up over her tits. Gretchen's mouth was sucking on
one tit while Erica was sucking on the other. Also Marcia's skirt was bunched
around her waist and her panties were on the floor of the car. Gretchen was
fingering Marcia wet pussy while Erica had put a pussy moistened finger into
Marcia's asshole. Marcia had managed to get her hands into the twin's panties
and she stroked both their pussies as they worked her over.  

"They just love to that while we are driving. They are so playful!" Stephie
remarked.  
  
Carol stared at the three teenagers and she felt her own loins begin to heat
up. Instinctively her hand went to her own pussy to rub it.  
  
"Feeling a bit randy Carol?" Stephie asked.  
  
"Yes," Carol gasped.  
  
"Why don't you remove your panties and slide over closer to me. I can do that
for you," Stephie suggested.  
  
Carol removed her panties and moved as close to Stephie as the car would
allow. Stephie smiled at her and reached over to stroke Carol's pussy. Carol
gasped aloud when Stephie's finger found its way into her pussy and located
her hard clit. As the three teenagers were getting each other off in the back
seat Carol was creaming Stephie's fingers with her womanly nectar. Stephie
pulled into her driveway and as she did she removed her fingers from Carol's
snatch and gave them a quick lick. The three teenagers in back were so turned
on that they had lost track of were they were.  
  
"Come on girls we can pick this up again inside," Stephie announced to
everyone.  
  
Gretchen pulled her fingers from Marcia's pussy and licked them seductively.
Erica popped her finger out of Marcia's asshole causing Marcia to flinch as
her sphincter closed around the void. Marcia licked her fingers clean of
Gretchen's and Erica's pussy juice and then the three teenagers made their way
inside the house. Stephie and Carol were already naked in the family room and
Carol was on her knees sucking on Stephie's pussy. Stephie was the only one
who had not orgasmed in the car and she quickly made up for lost time and
splashed her love juices all over Carol's face.  
  
The three teenagers quickly stripped off all of their clothes, dropped to the
floor and formed a small daisy chain. Gretchen was eating her sister's pussy
as Erica ate Marcia and Marcia ate Gretchen. Stephie lifted Carol to her feet
and kissed her tasting her own juices on Carol's mouth. Then she took Carol's
hand and led her over to the teenagers.  
  
"Let's join them," she told Carol.  
  
Stephie and Carol got on the floor with the teenagers and the five of them
rearranged themselves. Stephie began to eat Marcia's pussy as Carol fastened
her mouth to Stephie's cunt. Marcia continued to eat Gretchen's pussy as
Gretchen devoured Carol's twat. Eric slipped behind Marcia and began to play
with her ass. Erica scooped up pussy juices and worked it into Marcia's hot
ass and then she began to probe the tight channel with a finger. Erica soon
had one finger moving in and out easily and then added a second finger. Two
fingers were a little tight so Erica removed her fingers and began to tongue
Marcia little rosebud. She put plenty of saliva on the aperture and then
pushed it in with her tongue. Marcia was going mad with the dual tongue
action.  
  
Erica then moved over to Carol and worked her ass just as she had Marcia's.
Carol loved the dual action that she received from the twins and just the
thought of these beautiful teenage sisters licking her pussy and ass sent
Carol over the edge. Erica then left the group in the family room as she went
to get some toys for everyone. Erica returned with family's box of sex toys
and she spread them out on the coffee tables. There were vibrators, beads,
dildos, strap-on cocks, double dildo and a very special dildo that three cock
heads.  
  
Carol picked up the special dildo and said, "Oh this is so erotic, I have to
try this." Then she asked in a shaky voice, "Who wants to fuck me with this?"  
  
"I'll show you how to use it," Erica offered.  
  
Carol lay on her back as Erica worked one cock into Carol's pussy and another
cock into Carol's ass. The third cock Erica placed in her own pussy and then
she began to fuck her teammate's mother. Carol was in a euphoric state and her
mouth opened as if to scream but no sounds came out. She was overcome with
pleasure as Erica fucked her holes.  
  
Stephie lay on her back with a double dildo in her pussy and she summoned
Marcia to sit on the other end of it. Marcia straddled Stephie and lowered her
body onto the woman as the other end of the double dildo was fed into her
pussy. Marcia was facing her mother and Erica so she could watch them as she
and Stephie fucked each other not more than three feet away. Gretchen put on
one of the strap-on dildos and greased it thoroughly before sliding it into
Marcia's asshole. Marcia gasped audibly as the second fake cock filled her ass
and now she was had two cocks in her just as her mother did.  
  
Stephie and her twin daughters double fucked Carol and her daughter Marcia
through countless orgasms and they didn't stop until they were all exhausted.
Carol and Marcia begged the Keslers to stop fucking them as they just could
not cum anymore. They all rested for awhile and then Erica had a wild idea.  
  
Marcia and her mother lay on their sides facing each other with a double dildo
in their pussies. Stephie slipped a strap-on cock into Carol's ass and
Gretchen slipped a strap-on cock in Marcia's ass. Erica squirmed in between
Carol and Marcia so that her pussy was in Carol's face and her ass was
available to Marcia. Carol and Marcia were instructed to lick Erica's holes
while they were being fucked and fucking each other. It was a wild way to wrap
up the afternoon as the insatiable mothers and daughters had massive orgasms
and then collapsed totally exhausted and sated from the sexual couplings.  
  
After resting for several minutes Carol decided it was time to head home so
she asked Stephie to please drive them home. The twins decided to ride along
again in the back seat with Marcia and they played with Marcia's tits the
entire way. Carol and Marcia went right to their own beds after they arrived
home as they were totally drained from the day's activities. Stephie then
drove back to her house with her daughters and they too retired in their own
beds for the night.  
  
THE FINAL REGULAR SEASON GAMES  
  
Maria had worked on her plan most of Sunday evening and she announced it to
the Lady Cougars at Monday's practice. Monday was a light practice focused on
strategy with the new lineup. Maria would be deploying her quickest team at
the start of the game in hopes to beat Lincoln South to the punch.  
  
Tuesday arrived and everyone could feel the excitement in the air at Ridgeway
High School as the team would be playing for its first ever conference title.
The team was already on the field warming up when Lincoln South arrived. As
Lincoln South went through their warm-ups there was something different about
them; they didn't have that same cockiness or confidence about them. It was
obvious that they were nervous and that they were feeling the pressure of the
big game. Then the officials arrived and Maria's jaw dropped when see saw that
they were the same crew that Lincoln South always had at home.  
  
"Shit, how in the hell did we end up with those officials. I bet that bitch
had a lot to do with it!" exclaimed Janet.  
  
"Relax Janet there is nothing we can do about it. Don't let the team see that
you are annoyed. We beat them last time with these officials we can do it
again," Maria replied assertively.  
  
When the teams took the field the Lincoln South players looked confused and
they looked toward their coach. The coach looked equally confused as she
observed the Ridgeway lineup. The ball was put in play and the Lady Cougars
went right to work. The speedy lineup moved easily through the confused
Lincoln South defense and scored two goals within the first ten minutes. Then
Ridgeway added a third goal before the half ended with Ridgeway leading 3-0.  
  
The officiating had not been a factor at all in fact a very fair game was
being called much to the displeasure of the Lincoln South coach Sonya. She was
in the official's face the entire first half to no avail. When the teams took
the field for the second half Maria saw the look on the faces of Lincoln South
players. They were a beaten team. Maria returned to her normal lineup and by
game's end Ridgeway had soundly beat Lincoln South 4-0 and had clinched their
first conference title.  
  
Sonya and Maria shook hands at the center of the field as did the other
coaches and players. Maria thanked the officials for calling a very fair game.
They just smiled and wished her well in the playoffs. The team was ecstatic
and there was jubilation in the locker room. A continuous parade of
spectators, parents and school faculty came through to congratulate the
players. Every time that someone lauded Maria, she pointed to her players and
praised their commitment and hard work. Maria and Janet finally ushered all
visitors out of the locker room so that the team could shower and dress.  
  
Stephie teasingly whispered to Maria, "I was hoping that I could watch the
team shower."  
  
Maria slapped her playfully on her butt and replied, "I think that you have
seen your share of naked bodies."  
  
They both laughed and Stephie left the locker room. In the shower the girls
were still giggling with excitement but at the same time many a roving eye
took in the naked beauties soaping themselves. The girls finally finished
their showers, dressed and left for home. Maria and Janet decided to wait
until they were at Janet's house for their shower.  
  
As Maria and Janet let the locker room they ran into to Charly who was hoping
to interview them. They smiled at her and invited her to Janet's house to
conduct the interview. Charly gladly accepted the invitation and she secretly
hoped that the interview would proceed as last time and that she would end up
naked between the two coaches.  
  
"If you hurry you can shower with us," Janet tempted her.  
  
"I'll be there before you both," Charly replied excitedly.  
  
"Let's fuck her tonight Maria," Janet whispered.  
  
Maria smiled and answered, "Sure if you like, I think she's ready for it."  
  
That evening at Janet's house Charly joined the two beauties in the shower and
they soaped each other's bodies and played with each other's pussies, tits and
asses. Later in bed Janet and Maria treated Charly as their servant and the
young reporter did everything the coaches asked of her. Charly ate their
pussies and rimmed their assholes with enthusiasm. Charly was ready to explode
as neither Janet nor Maria had touched her pussy. Janet then brought out the
strap-on dildos that she and Maria both put on. Charly mounted Maria's fake
cock as Janet knelt behind her and slipped a well lubed dildo into Charly's
ass. It was the first time that Charly had anything larger than anal beads in
her ass but she went wild with the double penetration. Maria and Janet double
fucked Charly until she was exhausted and she begged them to stop.  
  
Later that night, Maria and Charly made their way back to their own homes.
Maria took a long hot bath and as she soaked in the tub she reflected on the
marvelous season with only one game to go against the last place team. Maria
then thought about the playoffs and she knew it would depend on the team's
seeding just how far they could go. Across town Charly did not have the luxury
of taking a long hot bath as she had to get her story into the paper before
midnight. She managed to make the deadline in spite of being distracted from
time to time as she reflected on the sound fucking she received from the two
coaches. Later very late that night Charly and Maria settled into their own
beds and slept soundly.  
  
Friday's game against Oakbrook went as planned. Maria played her usually non-
starting seniors for most of the game except that she left Anna in the goal
the entire game. Ridgeway came away with a 2-0 win and ended the regular
season 12-1. Maria was shocked to learn that Glenbrook had upset Lincoln South
3-2. Those two teams finished in a tie for second place with a conference
record of 9-3. Ridgeway now had the playoffs to look forward to and there was
no time to relax as the playoffs started next Tuesday. The sectional pairings
would be made this weekend and there were two teams that would be tough to
beat. Undefeated Immaculate Conception would be the number seed and the
favorite to win the state title but Maria knew that Midland would be tough as
well.  
  
THE PLAYOFFS  
  
Over the next two weeks both Ridgeway and Immaculate Conception advanced to
the section finals. Immaculate Conception breezed through the competition
while Ridgeway had two overtime wins, one over a tough Monarch Academy and the
other over Midland. Maria observed that the private schools particularly the
all girl's schools had excellent programs and very disciplined teams. She knew
the upcoming game against Immaculate Conception would be their toughest of the
year.  
  
On Friday night both teams took the field. Immaculate Conception wearing their
gold, green and white uniforms looked imposing. Maria could see her team was
nervous so she summoned them together for a quick pep talk. She reminded them
about how proud she was of them and how proud their parents, school and
community were of them.  
  
"No one expected us to ever be here so we having nothing to lose. Just play
your best as you always have and win or lose we will still be champions,"
Maria addressed the team.  
  
The team broke from the huddle fired up and returned to their warm-ups. As
they went through their pre-game drills Janet approached Maria.  
  
"They look like the Green Bay Packers in those uniforms," Janet remarked.  
  
"Yeah and they are built like the Green Bay Packers," Maria added.  
  
Immaculate Conception was indeed a very physical team. Maria silently prayed
to herself that the team would play well and that no one would be injured.
Both teams played to a scoreless tie by halftime but it was obvious that the
physical play of Immaculate Conception was taking its toll on the Lady
Cougars. The game remained scoreless until late in the second half. Anna made
a marvelous save diving across the goal but an Immaculate Conception player
managed to kick in the rebound before Anna could recover. The score remained
1-0 with just under two minutes in the game. Maria gave Anna the signal to
leave the goal and join the offense as the ball was kicked in the opponent's
end of the field. Immaculate Conception was just too strong on defense despite
the valiant efforts of the Lady Cougars. The game ended 1-0 and Immaculate
Conception was the sectional champion.  
  
After the victors joyous celebration on the field the two teams met at center
field to shake hands. The coaches congratulated each other and Maria wished
them well in the next round. The Immaculate Conception coach told Maria that
as far as she was concerned they had just played for the state title. As Maria
approached her team on the bench it was hard to hold back her own emotions.
Most of the girls were crying as they had taken the loss very hard. Maria
reminded them of their accomplishments this year and she thanked them again
for their hard work, dedication and commitment. She reminded them that they
would always be the team that put the Ridgeway soccer program on the map. In
spite of all her accolades the girls were just physically and emotionally
drained. Their accomplishments would sink in over the next several days but
for now they needed to let their emotions out.  
  
The team boarded the bus and when they returned to the school, hundreds of
supporters were there to greet them. It was another emotional scene as the
girls filed into the locker room amidst the cheers. The girls methodically
went about showering and dressing as they prepared to head home. They hugged
each other as they departed and then they each hugged Maria and Janet. After
everyone had left Maria and Janet locked up and headed to Janet's home where
they spent the night together in each other's arms.  
  
THE POST SEASON  
  
The weekend following the Lady Cougar's loss and elimination from the playoffs
was very laid back for everyone. The team cleaned out their lockers and spent
most of time at home. The lesbian mothers and daughters found solace in each
other's loving arms. Charly wrote a wonderful article about the team that
would appear in Sunday's paper but she wanted Maria and Janet to read it
before they saw it in the newspaper. Charly joined the two coaches Saturday
night and she ended up staying the night as the three of them made tender love
to each other.  
  
The following week was full of accolades for the team as they were awarded the
conference title trophy; they also received awards for the most improved team
and the best turnaround season. On Tuesday the Soccer Moms met once more to
discuss a final get together for the team and the coaches. The mother's agreed
that there would be plenty of celebration for the entire team so their party
would only include the known lovers from the team. In reality the mother's
were planning an orgy.  
  
Two weeks later the Soccer Moms, Coaches and selected players gathered at
Stephie's home for the season finale party. The party started out with the
women upstairs and the girls downstairs. It didn't take long for clothes to be
shed and beautiful naked female bodies put on display. Stephie suggested that
the women head downstairs to join the girls before the evening got too late.  
  
Stephie, Vicki, Shirley, Carol, Maria and Janet all walked into family room
totally naked. The scene before them was unbelievable as the naked teenagers
were involved in a variety of sex acts. Lauren and Marcia lay side by side on
their backs as the newest girls to the group, Amanda and Christy ate their
pussies. Amanda had her face buried in Lauren's cunt and Christy had her face
buried in Marcia's twat. Wendy was on her back with Gretchen sitting on her
face. Erica was eating Wendy's pussy while Anna was fucking Erica from behind
with a strap-on cock.  
  
"Oh my, gasped Carol, "Look at those luscious little nymphs. Look at those
delectable bums. I just have to taste one."  
  
"I'll take the other one," Shirley gushed as she followed Carol's lead.  
  
Carol and Shirley rushed to Amanda and Christy, dropped to their knees behind
the girls and began licking their pussies and assholes. Amanda's and Christy's
asses were so cute and inviting that Carol and Shirley could not keep their
tongues out of the teenager's bung holes. Carol pushed her tongue deep into
Amanda's rosebud as she caressed the beautiful teenage ass with her hands.
Shirley followed suit with Christy and soon both teenagers were writhing with
desire. Amanda and Christy squealed in delight from the anal tongue action but
their squeals were lost in the pussies of Lauren and Marcia.  
  
Stephie walked over to her daughter Gretchen and Wendy. She waited for her
daughter to orgasm and then she took her daughter's place on Wendy's face.
Wendy held the sexy mother by her thighs as Stephie lowered her pussy to
Wendy's expectant mouth. Wendy had become an accomplished cunt lapper
primarily from all the sessions with her mother Vicki. Wendy reached up and
grabbed Stephie's breasts with both hands as she devoured the women's pussy
and sucked on her clit.  
  
Anna spotted the mothers and coaches enter the room and she withdrew her
strap-on cock from Erica's dripping cunt. Anna stood and walked over to Maria
and embraced her. Anna then kissed Maria shoved her tongue into her coach's
mouth and fingered her coach's pussy. Maria gasped when the muscular girl's
thick finger penetrated her and filled her pussy.  
  
Anna smiled at Maria and said, "I have been waiting all year to do this."  
  
Maria smiled back and replied, "Well your wait is over."  
  
Anna led Maria over to a spot on the floor and had her coach lay down on her
back. Anna kissed her way down Maria's body spending a long time on her firm
big tits and rock hard nipples. Then Anna worked her way down Maria's body
licking and kissing her tummy before arriving at her pussy. Anna tickled
Maria's outer lips with her tongue and kissed her coach's inner thighs. Maria
was ready as she tried to pull Anna's head to her quim. Anna delighted in
teasing and torturing Maria as she continued to lick and kiss her labia and
thighs. Finally Anna plunged her tongue into Maria's pussy emitting an audible
gasp from the pretty coach. Anna ate Maria thoroughly and sucked on her erect
clit as Maria thrashed about with a continuous string of orgasms. Anna then
moved up Maria's body and pushed the rubber cock into her pussy. Anna leaned
over and kissed Maria as the cock filled the coach's cunt. Maria gasped as the
fake phallus filled her pussy and she tasted herself on Anna's lips. Anna
fucked Maria until Maria begged her to stop. Maria lay limp on the floor as
Anna withdrew the strap-on cock from her coach's pussy. Anna looked around and
then set her sights on Janet.  

Janet had been on all fours licking Wendy's pussy while Vicki was fucking
Janet from behind. Vicki had just pulled out of Janet's pussy and was making
her way over toward Amanda and Christy. Janet rolled over on her back away
from Wendy and Anna immediately got between her legs. Anna slipped the fake
cock into Janet and fucked her just as she had Maria. Stephie got off of
Wendy's face and made her way over to Amanda, Christy and Vicki. Vicki had the
two nymphets licking Janet's juices off the fake cock.  
  
"These little darlings are still virgins Vicki so we can't fuck them but let's
enjoy their tasty pussies," Stephie alerted Vicki.  
  
Stephie positioned Amanda on her back and dove right in the teen's pussy.
Vicki did the same with Christy and the two teenagers were overcome with
ecstasy as their pussies were devoured by their friend's mothers. Gretchen and
Erica were taking turns sitting on Janet's face as Anna continued to plow the
coach's pussy with the rubber cock. Carol and Lauren were fucking each other
with a double dildo as were Shirley and Marcia. The dildo that Shirley was
using was the one with three cock heads. Two of the cock heads were buried in
Marcia's pussy and ass while the third cock head was in Shirley's pussy.  
  
The rest of the night there were countless compilations and sexual acts
performed as every pussy and asshole were licked and fucked. The exception
being Amanda and Christy since they were still vaginal and anal virgins. Anna
made her rounds and fucked everybody in the room with her strap-on cock then
she had Amanda and Christy lick the fake cock clean and suck her pussy and
asshole.  
  
As the early morning hours approached, Maria and Janet dressed and left for
Janet's house. They were followed shortly by Anna, Amanda and Christy who also
dressed and headed to their respective homes. The others opted to spend the
night with the mothers and daughters pairing up. Stephie went to bed with her
daughters Gretchen and Erica. Vicki and Wendy took the twins bedroom while
Shirley and Lauren took one of the guest bedrooms. Carol and Marcia took the
other guest bedroom.  
  
The mothers and daughters made love way into the early morning hours. It
seemed fitting that was the way the night should end with the Lesbian Soccer
Moms and their daughters making love with each other.  
  
EPILOGUE  
  
Over the next several weeks, things slowed down. Immaculate Conception went on
to win the state championship. There were no more orgies although a few mother
and daughters got together from time to time. Maria and Janet also invited
Charly into their bed a few times. Maria had already started thinking about
spring camp and next season. She had been contacted by the Immaculate
Conception coach as to her interest in helping out with a summer soccer camp
for girls. Maria was thrilled and readily accepted. Maria was now a recognized
entity in the soccer community and she was very popular with the other coaches
and the press.  
  
Stephanie Kessler was lying in bed one morning after the twins departed for
school and she was thinking about what a wonderful season it had been. She
wondered who would step up next year and take the lead for the Soccer Mom's
club. She would certainly be willing to help out to get it started but most of
her attention would be with her daughter's college team. Stephie felt a little
romantic this morning she decided to invite the mothers over for a little late
morning fun. She placed the telephone calls and Carol, Vicki and Shirley were
thrilled she called and said they would be right over. Stephie smiled to
herself and thought well at least the Soccer Mom season is not over yet.




        Lesbian Soccer Moms 02 Ch. 01


THE INTERVIEW, OFFER AND COUNTER OFFER  
  
Maria arrived at the Lake Florence College on Wednesday at the appointed time.
Her first interview was with the athletic director Bobbi Parker. Bobbi was an
attractive woman at the age of 36. She was 5'7" tall with a nice figure. She
had more of an athletic build and she kept her brown hair cut short. Bobbi was
wearing a warm up- outfit the day of the interview, typical of an AD.  
  
Maria had decided to go right for the throat in the interview. She wore a
sleeveless summer dress that tied behind her neck. She did not wear a bra and
her nipples poked out through the material. The dress was cut above her knees
and showed off her tan shapely legs. Maria had not worn hose so her legs were
bare all the way up to her panties.  
  
When Maria walked into Bobbi's office, Bobbi starred at the Spanish beauty and
she felt her loins surge with excitement. She had not expected Maria to be so
beautiful and so stacked. Bobbi invited Maria to sit down on the sofa and then
stared at Maria's legs. Then Maria intentionally crossed her legs slowly
giving Bobbi a good look at her panty covered crotch.  
  
"Can I offer you something to drink?" Bobbi stammered trying to remain in
control.  
  
"No thank you," Maria replied in a soft sexy voice.  
  
Bobbi just wanted to run around her desk, throw up Maria's skirt and dive into
Maria's pussy. "You have quite a track record in a short five years Maria,
which is why we were attracted to you," Bobbi began.  
  
"Thank you! It has been fun and I was fortunate enough to have some talented
girls," Maria answered running her tongue over her lips wetting them.  
  
Bobbi felt that tingle again in her pussy but she tried to stay focused on the
interview. Although as far as she was concerned Maria was already hired. Bobbi
thought just wait until Millie sees her. Millie actually Mildred Cook, was the
college President. Bobbi continued the interview and then the top of Maria's
dress fell down exposing her beautiful breasts. Bobbi almost fainted when she
saw Maria's tits.  
  
"Oh my God, I'm so sorry. That is so embarrassing. My top must have become
untied," Maria faked her embarrassment as she had planned for it to happen. "I
think my breasts are too big sometimes."  
  
"Oh Maria I don't think that they are too big. Let me see your breasts again
and I will be honest with you about what I think of them," Bobbi offered
excitedly, her voice cracking.  
  
"What you want to see my breasts, here in your office?" Maria played the shy
role.  
  
"Well yes, it is very private here and the door is locked. I am sure that
other women and girls have seen your breasts before. I just want to see them
so I can give you honest feedback about them and about your concern that they
may be too big," Bobbi replied her voice cracking again.  
  
It was going better than Maria had expected. Maria untied the string behind
her neck and let her dress drop into her lap. Bobbi was struggling to keep her
desires in check as she looked at the buxom woman with her tits loose from
their confinement. Maria acted coy and covered her breasts with her hands.
Maria sat still with her hands covering her tits acting embarrassed with her
nudity. Bobbi walked over to Maria.  
  
"Now don't be shy, let me see them," Bobbi said as she gently pried Maria's
hands away and then she exclaimed, "Oh my they are beautiful, they are
perfect."  
  
Maria faked her shyness as she held her hands tightly in her lap while Bobbi
looked over her bare tits. Bobbi pushed Maria's shoulders back against the
sofa so that the girl's tits would be even more emphasized. Bobbi's hands were
trembling now as she touched Maria's skin.  
  
"Maria these are the most beautiful breasts that I have ever seen. You are
truly blessed and you should be very proud of them. They are so perfect that
they don't look real. I just have to touch them to be sure that they are
real," Bobbi said with a tremble in her voice.  
  
Maria faked her objection as Bobbi placed her hands on Maria's breasts and
held them lightly. Maria felt like an electric shock had just passed through
her body and then she realized that her nipples were hard and erect.  
  
"Oh my goodness, look at your nipples. I have never seen nipples like that.
They are so hard and so long," Bobbi remarked.  
  
Maria was pleased when Bobbi took the nipples between her fingers and gently
rolled them around. Maria sighed as an expected pleasure took over her body.
Maria knew that she had the AD right where she wanted her and Bobbi's hands
felt so good on her tits. Maria felt her pussy getting wet and her pubes
stirred as Bobbi continued to stroke her tits and diddle her nipples. Maria
shifted slightly and opened her legs slightly.  
  
"Is this exciting you Maria? Is my touching your breasts getting you hot?"
Bobbi asked in a shaky voice as her own emotions were escalating.  
  
"Yes a little. No one has ever been so gentle with them before," Maria role
played.  
  
"Well many times that is the difference between a woman's touch and a man's.
Do you touch yourself when you are alone Maria? Do you play with your pussy?
Do you want to touch yourself now?" Bobbi asked excitedly in recognition of
Maria's state.  
  
"Yes at home in bed I play with myself. Yes I do need to touch myself now,"
Maria gasped.  
  
"Go ahead dear pleasure yourself while I make love to your breasts," Bobbi
told her.  
  
Maria's hand darted under her skirt and she pulled her panties to one side
baring her vulva. She frantically rubbed her pussy lips and then inserted a
finger in search of her own clit. Bobbi watched the candidate finger herself
for a few minutes and then she decided to take Maria to the next step.  
  
Bobbi reached for Maria's hand and moved it away replacing it with her own.
Maria was so close to an orgasm that she didn't care at this point who was
rubbing her pussy. Bobbi turned Maria so that she could lean back into Bobbi's
body. Then she stroked Maria's pussy with one hand as she fondled Maria's tits
with the other. Bobbi brought Maria to the brink of her orgasm but then
suddenly stopped. Maria was hot and she quickly reached for her pussy but
Bobbi stopped her. Bobbi pushed Maria back against the sofa and then she knelt
on the floor in front of Maria. Bobbi ran her hands under Maria's skirt and
hooked her fingers in Maria's panties. Bobbi pulled the panties down and off
Maria's legs and tossed them aside.  
  
Bobbi then parted Maria's luscious thighs and lowered her face to Maria's
pussy. Maria's plan had worked as the AD moved toward her pussy. Maria gasped
aloud when she felt the first contact of Bobbi's tongue on her pussy. Bobbi
lifted Maria's legs up and pulled Maria closer to her. Bobbi then reached up
around Maria's legs and found her tits as she closed her mouth over Maria's
pussy. Maria went wild as Bobbi ate her and played with her big tits.  
  
Bobbi could tell by Maria's reaction to her tongue lapping that she was on the
brink of a massive orgasm. Bobbi again flicked her tongue inside the coach's
pussy and let it travel up from Maria's vagina to her clit. She pointed her
tongue and slowly drew circles on the flat space under Maria's clit. Maria
tensed up and she moved her hips trying to get Bobbi's mouth to stay on her
clit. Maria moved her hands to her pussy and pulled back the hood exposing her
clit. Bobbi saw this and she flicked her pointed tongue quickly over Maria's
exposed flesh feeling it harden with each stroke.  
  
"Oh God Bobbi, don't stop please, make me cum. I'm going to cum. I'm cumming
Bobbi, oh Bobbi!" Maria screamed as her body thrashed around with the
intensity of her orgasm.  
  
Bobbi continued tongue fucking her and playing with her clit and Maria could
not stand it anymore as her body went rigid. Maria moaned and lifted her hips
toward Bobbi's face as if she were trying to get the tongue deeper into her
pussy. Bobbi released Maria's tits and grabbed Maria's buttocks. She continued
with her tongue lapping and squeezed Maria's shapely ass at the same time.
This final act took Maria over the edge with a mind numbing orgasm.  
  
Bobbi smiled to herself in conquest and slowly withdrew her tongue from
Maria's pussy. She was not done by any means yet but she would let Maria take
a few minutes to recover. As Bobbi felt Maria's body relax and sensed her
relaxed state, she slowly ran her tongue up the inside of her pussy and Maria
jumped as she felt another tremor shake her body.  
  
Bobbi stood up and looked at the beautiful woman in her sofa. Maria was
breathing hard and her breasts rose and fell with every breath. Her skirt was
thrown up over her lap and her pretty pussy and luscious thighs were on
display. Bobbi knew that she could spend the rest of the day with his woman
and under different circumstances she would. Bobbi knew that the day would
come when she would make Maria cum repeatedly until she was drained but today
was not that day.  
  
"Maria that was just very special. I wanted to show you just how things can be
around here. Please don't be embarrassed, women do it all the time and it was
obvious that you enjoyed it," Bobbi said.  
  
"I don't know what to say. I've never done anything like that in someone's
office before but it felt so good. What about you?" Maria asked with a smile.  
  
"Oh, there will plenty of time for us to get together but right now I need you
to meet the President of our college," Bobbi told Maria.  
  
Bobbi picked up the phone and called the President, "Millie its Bobbi. I would
like you to meet our candidate for the soccer head coach position. Oh the
interview went very well. Yes she's our girl if you approve and she accepts
the offer. Okay see you in a few."  
  
After her conversation with Bobbi, Millie joined them in Bobbi's office. The
two college women this time removed all of Maria's clothes this time. The
Maria was stroked and fondled until she thought that she would faint from her
excitement. Maria asked to sit down so she was steered over to the sofa in the
room and she sat back in it.  
  
"My God but you are beautiful!" exclaimed Millie as she stared at the
voluptuous Maria.  
  
Maria sat on the sofa and the two women moved toward her. Millie and Bobbi
were both clearly infatuated with Maria's beauty at this point. Bobbi knelt
between Maria's legs and began eating her pussy again. Millie sat next to
Maria and fondled and kissed the girl's large firm tits. Millie just loved
Maria's hard nipples and rolled the nubs around in her mouth. Maria was
extremely turned on by this dual attention and she felt her orgasm coming on.
Maria's body stiffened slightly and she gasped into her own hand as she coated
Bobbi's face with her female nectar. Bobbi finished licking Maria's pussy and
then moved up to trade positions with Millie.  
  
Millie moved between Maria's legs and began an equally competent licking of
Maria's pussy. Bobbi kissed Maria and she was pleased when Bobbi thrust her
tongue into her mouth. Maria tasted her own juices on Bobbi's face as the two
of them kissed. Bobbi then turned her attention to Maria's tits and worked
them much like Millie had. Millie was totally consumed with Maria's pussy when
she decided the test new waters. Millie slid a pussy moistened finger into
Maria's ass and she was pleased when Maria tightened her butt in response. An
experienced asshole Millie thought to herself.  
  
Millie continued to eat Maria's pussy and finger her asshole as Bobbi worked
the young coach's large firm tits. Maria felt another orgasm and this time her
hips came off the sofa with the intensity of it. Millie's face was covered
with Maria's nectar and she sat up and kissed Bobbi. Bobbi kissed Millie back
and tasted Maria on her lover's mouth. Maria then surprised them both when she
offered to eat their pussies. First Millie pulled up her skirt and Maria
removed Millie's panties. As Maria ate Millie's pussy, Bobbi stripped off her
warmups and then got down behind Maria. Bobbi licked Maria's pussy from behind
and every so often so let her tongue dance over Maria's anus. Maria wiggled
her ass in response as she continued to service Millie's pussy.  
  
After Millie came she changed places with Bobbi. Now Maria went to work on
Bobbi's pussy as Millie licked Maria from behind. Millie also ran her tongue
over Maria's anus and Maria decided that she liked this place already. Bobbi
then came and drenched Maria's face with love juice. The three of them then
composed themselves and straightened up the best they could. Once they were
dressed, Bobbi presented Maria with an offer.  
  
Maria knew she had the upper hand at that point so she said she would accept
the position if she could bring her assistant coach Janet with her. Bobbi and
Millie looked at each other as they had not expected a counter offer such as
that.  
  
"I'll tell you what, just bring her in for an interview and if you don't like
her, I'll still consider taking the job," Maria offered.  
  
Millie and Bobbi agreed as they did not want to lose Maria. They wanted the
decision about the new coach wrapped up this week so Maria called Janet and
arranged for an interview that Friday.  
  
JANET'S INTERVIEW  
  
Maria had stayed in town and awaited Janet's arrival of Thursday. They had
dinner together that night and shared the same hotel room. Maria filled Janet
in on the interview and how she let the AD and President think that they had
seduced her. Janet got excited about her interview the next day and Maria told
her to be bold.  
  
"Let them think that they are in charge but give yourself to them willingly,"
Maria advised.  
  
They both went to sleep early that evening and the next morning after
breakfast Janet made her way over to the AD's office. Janet stopped in the
ladies room and took off her thong panty and put it in her purse. Janet then
located Bobbi Parker's office and looked in to see if she was there.  
  
"Excuse me I am sorry to bother you," Janet said apologetically to the
attractive woman seated behind the desk.  
  
"Yes may I help you?" Bobbi replied before looking up from her desk.  
  
Bobbi then looked up and was stunned to see such a beautiful young woman
standing in the door way to her office. Neither of them spoke again as Bobbi
just took in the leggy fit blonde beauty.  
  
"My name is Janet and I am here for the soccer assistant coach's interview,"
Janet said.  
  
"Won't you please come in and sit down. You are a little early," Bobbi offered
and then introduced herself, "I am Bobbi Parker I am the Athletic Director."  
  
"Yes, thank you! It's a pleasure to meet you. I know that I am early but I
just wanted to be sure that I was on time," Janet replied.  
  
Janet went in and sat on the sofa as Maria had told her. As she sat down she
repeated the leg swing that Maria had executed two days before assuring that
her dress would expose her crotch and her bare pussy. Her move did not go
unnoticed by Bobbi.  
  
"My God she is not wearing any panties!" Bobbi said silently to herself.  
  
Janet noticed the astonished look on the AD's face and wickedly crossed her
legs again repeating the same gesture of exposing her bare pussy. Bobbi stared
at the naked muff as Janet lifted one leg to cross over the other as if she
was trying to get comfortable on the sofa.  
  
"Sorry, just trying to get comfortable. Is something wrong?" Janet asked.  
  
"Well it's just that I couldn't help notice that you are not wearing any
panties," Bobbi stammered.  
  
Oh that, yes you're right I also don't wear bras either. I like the free
feel," Janet replied.  
  
Bobbi's face was beet red but she could also feel her own loins heating up
from the exhibitionist display of this girl. Janet looked at her and asked if
everything was okay. Bobbi saw her lips move but didn't hear any words. Bobbi
finally regrouped and heard Janet speak.  
  
"Are you alright?" Janet said louder this time.  
  
"Yes, yes I'm fine. You just caught me off guard when you crossed your legs,"
Bobbi said with a crack in her voice.  
  
Bobbi then noticed that Janet's skirt was just below her pussy and showing off
her sexy thighs and shapely legs. Bobbi found herself staring at the beautiful
blond as if she was hoping to get a glimpse of her pussy again.  
  
"Bobbi, why don't you come over here on this side of your desk and sit next to
me? That way you won't have to strain to see my legs or my bare pussy," Janet
offered.  
  
Bobbi couldn't believe her ears but she like a zombie she stood up and walked
around her desk toward Janet. Bobbi was captivated by this blonde woman and
seemed to be under a spell.  
  
"You probably should shut the door," Janet reminded her.  
  
Bobbi quickly shut the door and locked it. Then she sat on the sofa next to
Janet. Janet smiled at her and then lifted her skirt up to her waist once
again putting her luscious pussy on display. Bobbi just sat there in a stupor
staring at the golden muff.  
  
"Would you like to touch my pussy? It is okay if you want to touch it," Janet
teased her.  
  
Bobbi ran her hands up over the blonde's beautiful legs and stroked her inner
thighs. Janet spread her legs a little wider so that Bobbi could see her
labia. Bobbi was crazy with desire as she slipped a finger into Janet's twat.
Janet was very wet so Bobbi added a second finger. She fingered Janet for
awhile and then took her fingers out of the girl's quim and licked them.  
  
"You can eat my pussy if you would like to," Janet continued the seduction.  
  
Bobbi sank to her knees and lifted Janet's legs up onto her shoulders. Then
Bobbi put her mouth on Janet's cunt and began to lick her thoroughly. Bobbi
knew what she was doing and Janet recognized her as an accomplished cunt
lapper. Janet moaned with her first orgasm and coated Bobbi's face with her
juices. Bobbi kept right on eating Janet's pussy reveling in her stroke of
good luck. Both of them were startled by someone knocking on the door to
Bobbi's office. Then they heard a voice.  
  
"Bobbi this is Millie, please open the door I need to speak with you," Millie
said through the door.  
  
"It's the President I have to open the door," Bobbi gasped.  
  
Janet and Bobbi both stood up as Bobbi opened the door for Millie. Millie
starred at Bobbi and then at the beautiful blonde. Millie could smell the sex
in the air and she could see the moistness on Bobbi's face. "My God," she
thought to herself, "She's been eating pussy."  
  
"Millie this is Janet," started Bobbi but before she could finish her
statement Millie cut her off.  
  
"Back in the office, this instance, both of you," Millie said trying to sound
firm but she came across as unconvincing.  
  
"Why?" Janet challenged.  
  
Millie stammered as she said, "Because I know what you two have been up to."  
  
"If you say so," said Janet cockily.  
  
The three women went back into Bobbi's office and she closed the door and
locked it. Millie turned to look at Bobbi and the beautiful blonde. She
couldn't believe that Janet was such a beauty and now she wanted to enjoy this
blonde morsel as well.  
  
"I should probably just take off my dress," Janet said as she peeled the
yellow mini dress over her head and stood nude in front of the two women.  
  
"My God but you are beautiful!" exclaimed Millie.  
  
Janet walked over and sat on the sofa and beckoned the two women toward her.
Millie and Bobbi were both clearly under Janet's control at this point. Bobbi
knelt between Janet's legs and picked up where she had left off eating her
pussy. Millie sat next to Janet and fondled and kissed the girl's firm tits.
Millie just loved Janet's hard nipples and rolled the nubs around in her
mouth. Janet was extremely turned on by this dual attention and she felt her
second orgasm coming on. Janet's body stiffened slightly and she gasped as she
coated Bobbi's face with her female nectar. Bobbi finished licking Janet's
pussy and then moved up to trade positions with Millie.  
  
Millie moved between Janet's legs and began an equally competent licking of
Janet's pussy. Bobbi kissed Janet and she was surprised when Janet thrust her
tongue into Bobbi's mouth. Janet tasted her own juices on Bobbi's face as the
two girls kissed. Bobbi then turned her attention to Janet's tits and worked
them much like Millie had. Millie was totally consumed with Janet's pussy when
Janet spoke.  

"Put your finger in my ass," Janet whispered.  
  
Millie slid a pussy moistened finger into Janet's ass and she was pleased when
it slid in so easily. Millie added a second finger and then she felt Janet's
sphincter tighten around the two digits. Millie continued to eat Janet's pussy
and finger her asshole as Bobbi worked the Janet's pert firm tits. Janet felt
another orgasm and this time her hips came off the sofa with the intensity of
it. Millie's face was covered with Janet's nectar and she sat up and kissed
Bobbi. Bobbi kissed Millie back and tasted Janet on her lover's mouth. The two
of them kept kissing each other and then they reached under each other's skirt
in search of each other's pussy.  
  
Janet helped the two women undress and then she positioned them on the sofa.
She had Millie lay on her back with Bobbi on top of her. Millie's and Bobbi's
tits pressed together as they kissed. Janet moved the two sets of legs apart
and then got close so that she could lick both pussies at the same time.
Millie and Bobbi went wild and Janet was thrilled that she got them so
excited. Before long the two women were cumming and thrashing around with
their tongues intertwined. Janet drank up all the nectar and she was sure that
Bobbi had squirted.  
  
The three women finally separated and got dressed. Bobbi and Millie were still
in a state of disbelief that they had had sex twice that week with two
beautiful women in Bobbi's office. Janet looked at them and then asked.  
  
"So how did I do in the interview?"  
  
"You passed with flying colors. Millie and I agree that we could use another
assistant coach. You and Maria are both hired," Bobbi stated.  
  
"That's great news. I'll go tell Maria and then we will make plans to move up
here," Janet accepted and then she left the office.  
  
Once Janet left, Bobbi and Millie hugged and Millie said, "Can you believe it?
We got those two beauties and they are competent coaches too."  
  
"Should be an interesting season," Bobbi sighed.  
  
"Well as soon as they get in town we will have a planning session at my house.
We can introduce them to the trainer and the other assistant coach. My God I
can't wait," Millie exclaimed and then asked, "Are you coming over tonight?"  
  
"Absolutely," Bobbi confirmed. Janet returned to the hotel and told Maria the
good news. They went out to dinner to celebrate and then returned to the hotel
to make passionate love with each other. The next morning they were on their
way back home. There was a lot to do and Maria wanted to tell the Ridgeway
High School AD and Principal about her decision to accept the position at Lake
Lawrence. Of course Janet had to submit her resignation as well. Once they had
informed the school of their decisions then they had to formulate plans for
their relocation.  
  
The next several weeks were quite busy for Maria and Janet before they finally
arrived in New Hampshire. Millie arranged temporary housing for them until
they could find their own place and have their furnishings delivered. Maria
then received a call at the college apartment informing her and Janet of the
planning session scheduled at Millie's home. It would also be their welcoming
reception. FACULTY AND COACHES PLANNING SESSION  
  
Millie had invited the AD Bobbi, the new coaches Maria, Janet, the nurse Lori
and the other assistant coach Monique over to her home to discuss the upcoming
school year and soccer season. The President and AD discussed the previous
year's season for the new coaches benefit. Maria and Janet were not shocked at
the report but they were surprised by the number of student athletes that had
been involved in the prior year's sexual activities.  
  
They discussed the new crop of recruits and returning varsity players for the
coming year and Millie had only listed the known gay students for the purpose
of discussion. There was one new recruit who was very pretty named Tina. She
was only 5'3" but she was built like the proverbial brick shit house. Tina had
large tits probably at least a 38" bust but she had a tiny waist, shapely legs
and a beautiful round ass. She had dark brown hair, brown eyes and that very
mysterious Mediterranean appearance.  
  
Millie felt a little sorry for Tina as she guessed that it was her tits that
drew attention to her. Unfortunately for Tina she had blossomed early and now
she could very well become a cow if she didn't watch her weight. The women
agreed she was a potential lesbian target and Bobbi volunteered to explore
Tina's potential further.  
  
Other soccer girls were discussed but the ones who generated the most
discussion were the sisters, Katrina and Heidi Swanson. Millie had long
suspected that these sisters preferred girls to boys and after meeting their
mother Hilda, Millie was convinced that the mother was a lesbian. Millie often
wondered if there was an incestuous lesbian relationship going on with the
sisters.  
  
The women talked about some other administrative duties, Maria discussed her
approach to the season and then Millie called the business meeting to a close.
Millie had decided that she wanted to kick off the year with the present
female bodies.  
  
"Well we have finished our business for the evening, should we have some fun
now?" Millie asked. The women looked at Millie as if they thought they knew
what was on her mind but nobody moved.  
  
Bobbi spoke up, "Sure, why not there aren't any secrets here?"  
  
All six of the women undressed as if it was the most natural thing to do and
then stood naked looking at each other and taking in each other's beauty and
unique attributes. Millie approached the school nurse Lori and told her not to
be shy as she was still adjusting to a gay life. Bobbi and Janet led Monique
over to one of the sofas and sat down on the edge of it on either side of
Monique. Millie and Maria led Lori over to the other sofa and they sat facing
Janet, Monique and Bobbi. Millie and Maria sat close to Lori so that their
bodies were touching. Bobbi and Janet did the same with Monique.  
  
"This is so hot," said Janet as she and Bobbi moved their hands over Monique's
body.  
  
"So have you experimented with any new toys or dildos yet?" asked Millie. Then
she and Maria moved even closer to Lori and began to move their hands over her
breasts and thighs.  
  
"Not since you introduced me to a strap-on cock last year," Lori replied
nervously but she was turned on by the caressing of her body.  
  
"Well we have some surprises for you later but first things first," said
Millie as she and Maria gently pushed Lori back on the sofa.  
  
Janet and Bobbi also pushed Monique back on the other sofa and Janet got
between Monique's legs as Bobbi mounted Monique's face. Janet wasted no time
in cupping Monique's hot ass and as she plunged her tongue deep into the
assistant coach's pussy.  
  
Then on the opposite sofa Maria straddled Lori's face just as Millie slid
between Lori's legs and began to eat her cunt. Millie probed Lori's pussy with
her fingers and sucked on her clit. Lori's legs were then lifted on her
shoulders exposing her ass and her little aperture. Millie then began to lick
Lori's bung hole and tickled it with her tongue. Millie had a long thin tongue
that probed deeply into Lori's ass as she continued to finger fuck her pussy.
Lori knew she was going to cum soon so she picked up the pace eating Maria's
pussy. Maria held herself open for Lori and she went wild as Lori nibbled on
her clit.  
  
"Lori you are a natural," proclaimed Maria and then yelled, "Oh this is going
to be a quick one."  
  
Maria humped herself on Lori's mouth and came in buckets all over her face.
Lori reached her own climax and drenched Millie's face. Millie sucked her dry
as if she didn't want to miss a drop of Lori's nectar.  
  
"She is a real squirter," Millie announced as she moved up the bed to straddle
Lori's face and then said to Maria, "Your turn."  
  
"A real live squirter oh let me at her," Maria said excitedly and then covered
Lori's pussy with her mouth.  
  
The actions were repeated this time with Millie cumming on Lori's face and
with Lori squirting her juice into Maria's mouth. Only this time Maria
fingered Lori's asshole the whole time as she ate her to climax. The three
women then separated and sat on the sofa watching Janet, Monique and Bobbi.
Bobbi was riding Monique's face as Janet ate out Monique's pussy. Janet had
pushed anal beads into Monique's ass and she held onto the string as she ate
her. As Monique started to cum, Janet pulled on the string and one by one the
beads popped out of Monique's asshole. There were six beads in all and
Monique's body jerked in spasm each time one of them cleared her sphincter
intensifying her orgasm. Janet moaned aloud into Monique's cunt as her mouth
was filled with Monique's juices. Monique collapsed on the sofa next to Janet
and Bobbi and the three of them hugged and kissed one another.  
  
Millie got up and went over to a bag in the corner of the room where she
retrieved six dildos four strap-on dildos and a couple of two headed dildos
that had to be 18" to 20" long with a fake set of balls in the center. Millie
strapped on one dildo that was very large. Maria, Janet and Bobbi strapped on
the other ones that were about the same size. Maria lay on her back and Millie
had Monique straddle the dildo and lower her pussy on it. Millie then greased
up Monique's asshole and the strap-on cock. Millie then pushed the fake cock
all the way into Monique's asshole and then she and Maria began to fuck
Monique's two holes.  
  
Bobbi and Janet were double fucking Lori on the other sofa. Bobbi was on her
back playing with Lori's tits as she fucked her pussy. Janet was pounding away
at Lori's ass and had the entire dildo buried in her poop chute. Lori was
moaning and screaming for the girls to fuck her hard.  
  
Monique came and came from the ferocious pounding of her pussy and ass. She
pleaded with Millie and Maria to let her rest for awhile. Maria walked over to
the other sofa and presented her fake cock covered with Monique's cunt juice
to Lori's mouth. Lori sucked it right into her mouth as she was fucked by
Bobbi and Janet. It was an incredibly erotic sight to see Lori triple
penetrated by three fake cocks.  
  
The strap-on dildos had little nubs on the end that massaged the pussies of
the girls doing the fucking. Bobbi, Janet and Maria were being stimulated by
the action of Lori's body as they triple fucked her. Soon all four of them
climaxed again and then they collapsed in a heap on the sofa.  
  
"Very nice show girls," said Millie as she sat next to Monique and caressed
her breasts.  
  
They all needed a break so Millie served some wine and everyone kicked back
for awhile. All the women were now comfortable with their nudity and
sexuality. After consuming the wine and feeling well rested the women
rekindled the orgy and fucked each other well into the early evening hours.
They all tried a number of different positions and penetrations with the
dildos.  
  
Monique and Lori lay on their sides fucking Bobbi in the ass and pussy with
the strap-on cocks. Millie and Maria did the same to Janet but Maria had a
double dildo in her ass with the other end in Lori's ass. The six of them were
coupled together by the fake cocks. Later Janet and Bobbi were placed on all
fours with their butts touching. Millie inserted one of the double headed
dildos in Bobbi's pussy and the other end in Janet's pussy. Then Millie placed
a second double dildo in Bobbi's ass and the other end in Janet's ass. Janet
and Bobbi double fucked each other as they ate the other women's pussies. As
Janet and Bobbi were eating two of the women the other two women knelt down
beside them and played with their tits and diddled their clits. Janet and
Bobbi had mind blowing orgasms and they were done for the night.  
  
Everyone was sated and exhausted and they were sprawled on the two sofas in
Millie's family room. Millie suggested that everyone call it an evening but
she offered that anyone who wanted to stay the night was welcome. All the
women but Bobbi and Janet decided to shower dress and go home. Bobbi and Janet
spent the night sleeping with Millie in the king size bed.  
  
THE WEEKS AHEAD  
  
Maria and Janet found a very roomy 2 bedroom condo not far from the campus and
moved in. Then they began the arduous task of reviewing the previous season
and assessing the returning talent. There were two girls who were new this
year so they were an unknown in terms of talent. The girls were Chinese and
they were twin sisters. Apparently they had transferred from another school
and they had one year of ineligibility as a result of the transfer. Their
names were Soo and Mai Ling and they would be juniors.  
  
Tina was the goalie and in spite of her big tits she was agile, quick and cat
like. She stood at 5'11" and weighed in at 130 pounds. Tina had dark brown
hair and dark mysterious eyes. It seemed obvious to Maria that Tina like girls
because she was always checking them out on campus.  
  
The defense looked like it had some talent although watching the films the
girls appeared to be lazy. Maria would fix that and she would have the girls
in shape by the time the season started. The two fullbacks, Annie and Claudia,
had very strong legs and appeared to be dependable. The two halfbacks, Marcia
and Susan, needed work but they both had potential. It was the offense that
concerned Maria.  
  
There were no returning offensive starters from last year's team. There was
Maggie the center who had good ball handling skills and had decent speed. The
two forwards were an unknown as were the two wings. Soo and Mai had indicated
on their form that they were forwards. Maria really wouldn't know what she had
until practice started. Maria was anxious for the first practice so that she
could assess the talent and depth on the team.  
  
The first week of practice was a killer for most of the girls. Maria and Janet
worked the girl's tails off. There were two-a-day practices that were grueling
workouts. In the morning it was all conditioning and in the afternoon it was
skills and drills. By the end of the week Maria and Janet were pleased with
the girl's work ethic. No one complained and they all bought in to Maria's
coaching style. Tina was a constant positive influence on her team mates as
she was always encouraging them and pumping them up.  
  
Soo and Mai were a pleasant surprise. They were very quick and had excellent
ball handling skills. Despite their petite frames they were not afraid to mix
it up with the bigger girls. Tammy and Bonnie turned out to be adequate at the
wing positions. Tammy was left footed which worked out perfect for Maria. The
starting team was better than average and the other girls just needed more
development.  
  
The fun part of practice that week for the coaches Maria, Janet and Monique,
was to be in the locker room while the team showered after practice. The three
coaches checked out all the naked bodies and they were pleased with what they
saw. Maria was particularly drawn to the twins, Soo and Mai. They had very
petite bodies but with bumps in the right places. They had small firm tits
that were perfect for their 5'4" frames. They both had cute round asses that
Maria would like to get her tongue into. Their hair was jet black as was their
neatly trimmed pubic hair. They had hard little black nipples framed in dark
brown areoles and their legs were very shapely. Both girls couldn't have
weighed more than 95 pounds. They looked like porcelain dolls but they were
far from being fragile.  
  
One afternoon, Soo and Mai had stayed on the practice filed longer than the
rest of the team as they wanted to work on their shots on goal. When they
finally did come in all the girls were gone with the exception of Tina. But
Tina was in the training room with the assistant coach Monique and not visible
to the twins. In fact Tina was stretched out naked on the training table with
an equally naked Monique on top of her. They were in a 69 position and they
were enjoying each other's pussy.  
  
Soo and Mai took off their practice uniforms and went into the shower.
Convinced that they were alone they washed each others body playing with each
others tits and pussies. Maria and Janet had come down to check on Tina and
Monique when they heard the shower running. Maria peeked in and saw the twins
embracing and kissing each other. Maria waved Janet over and put a finger to
her lips in a signal to be quiet. Maria and Janet then watched as the two
sisters made love to each other in the shower.  
  
Soo and Mai were kissing and fingering the others pussy. Then Soo dropped to
her knees and began to eat Mai's pussy. Soo held onto to Mai's cute ass as she
plunged her tongue into Mai's pussy. Mai had her back to Maria and Janet so
neither girl knew the coaches were watching them. Mai then grabbed Soo's head
and steadied herself as she came in her sister's mouth. Mai took a few moments
to recover and then she dropped to her knees and began to eat Soo's pussy.  
  
Soo's eyes drifted to the shower room opening and she saw Maria and Janet
there watching her and her sister. Maria put a finger up to her lips signaling
Soo not to say anything. Soo then just stood there as Mai ate her pussy as the
two coaches watched. Soo then came in Mai's mouth and then Mai stood up and
kissed her sister. The two of them kissed and then Soo whispered in Mai's ear.
Mai's head snapped around and she saw the coaches smiling at her and Soo.  
  
Maria beckoned the two girls to her and they walked over to Maria with their
heads bowed like naughty girls. Maria lifted up their faces with a hand under
each chin and smiled at them. The girls expected to be disciplined and they
were not ready for what Maria proposed.  
  
"That was a very nice show but you should be more careful in public. I would
like you two to come to our condo this Saturday and we will discuss this
further," Maria stated.  
  
Soo and Mai both nodded their agreement and then Maria told them to get
dressed. Maria and Janet then walked into the training room and saw that Tina
was now bent over the training table and Monique was kneeling behind her.
Monique was tonguing Tina's pussy and ass from behind as her hands sought out
Tina's big tits. Maria reminded Monique to lock up when she left. Then Maria
and Janet walked out of the locker room.  
  
"Let's get home and get naked. I am so hot right now from watching those
twins," Janet said in a raspy tone.  
  
"My thoughts exactly," Maria echoed.  
  
SOO AND MAI VISIT MARIA AND JANET  
  
The team had a light practice on Saturday morning and then they were dismissed
for the weekend. Maria reminded Soo and Mai to come to the condo after lunch.
Maria and Janet then went home and anxiously awaited the arrival of the
Chinese twins.  
  
"I'm really looking forward to Chinese food today," Janet said jokingly.  
  
"You're bad! I wonder if they are still virgins or if they have played around
with any toys?" Maria replied.  
  
"I don't know but I am looking forward to anything we do with them. They are
so delicious looking," Janet added.  
  
"Yes I'm looking forward to their visit too," Maria agreed.  
  
After lunch Mai and Soo arrived at Maria's condo as planned. They were not
surprised to see Janet there and they wondered what the two coaches had in
store for them. Maria and Janet were wearing workout shorts and t-shirts. They
were not wearing bras or panties and they were barefoot. Soo and Mai had worn
tasteful one piece outfits that were loose fitting and concealed their charms.
Maria instructed the two pretty girls to undress each other slowly and to
place each piece of clothing on the chair in the room.  
  
Mai as she had done many times undressed Soo with painstaking slowness and she
soon had Soo's pussy throbbing in anticipation. Maria and Janet watched
intently as Mai removed every article of Soo's clothing until the girl was
standing in the room naked. Then Soo undressed Mai and she soon had her sister
as naked as her. They stood together admiring each other's naked beauty in the
presence of their soccer coaches. Maria then instructed the girl's to embrace
and caress each other's body.  

The two pretty twins stepped close to one another and wrapped their arms
around the other's body. They French kissed each other deeply as their tongues
danced around in the other's mouth. Their small breasts pressed against each
other's as their hands caressed their backs and worked their way down to their
shapely asses. The girls ground their pubic mounds together as they cupped
each other's ass cheeks moaning in each other's mouth. The two sisters were a
picture of erotica as they held, kissed and caressed one another. They looked
like two nymphets embracing in their natural wonder.  
  
Maria told Mai that she should begin her descent on Soo and work her way down
to her sister's pussy. Mai broke her kiss with Soo and then slowly trailed her
tongue and lips down Soo's body. Mai took her time and sucked on Soo's perky
tits and nipples for quite some time before moving to her tummy. Mai tickled
Soo's belly button with her tongue and licked all around the sensitive area.
Mai finally reached Soo's pussy and she found it to be dripping wet as she ran
her tongue over the moist vagina. Soo gasped out loud and grabbed Mai's head
for support as the tongue danced over her hot twat. Mai did as she had done
many times and worked her magic on Soo's pussy. Soo was moaning and pressing
her quim into Mai's face as she experienced a string of orgasms.  
  
"I have got to get my clothes off this is making me way too hot," Janet sighed
and then quickly stripped.  
  
Maria was also taken by the erotic scene before her and elected to strip as
well. She and Janet sat back on the sofa with their naked bodies touching as
they watched the pretty sisters make love to one another. Without being told
Soo repeated the action on her sister and before long Mai was writhing,
moaning and cumming. The two sisters then stood once again and kissed each
other deeply tasting their juices mingled with each other's.  
  
"Let's take this to my bed," Maria directed.  
  
The two coaches and the two teenagers moved to Maria's bedroom where Maria had
Mai and Soo lay next to each other on the bed. Then Janet knelt between Mai's
legs and lowered her mouth to the tasty Chinese pussy. Maria did the same with
Soo and the two coaches knelt side by side as they ate two of their player's
pussies. It spite of the fact that they had just orgasmed, the pussy eating
skills of Maria and Janet were just too much for the young girls. They were
soon thrashing and groaning on the bed as Maria and Janet worked over their
young energetic pussies. The girls pushed their hips up toward the women
trying to get the tongues even deeper into their cunts. Almost simultaneously
the two sisters screamed with the intensity of their orgasms. Maria and Janet
continued to lick their creaming pussies and nibble on their aroused clits as
they climaxed wildly. As the girls calmed a little Maria and Janet kissed and
licked around their pussies and inner thighs. The girls shivered with delight
as the tongues tickled them.  
  
Maria got off the bed and then returned with two strap-on dildos. Mai and Soo
had never seen anything like them before but found them to be erotic and
frightening at the same time. Maria said that she would demonstrate how they
were used and with that said she moved between Janet's legs and inserted the
fake cock into her colleague's pussy. Janet's pussy was so wet that the dildo
slid right in to the base and then Maria proceeded to fuck her. Janet thrust
her hips up to meet Maria's and the two of them fucked hard toward their first
orgasm. The nub of the dildo rubbed against Maria's clit as the entire rod
pummeled Janet's pussy.  
  
The two sisters stared with their mouths open as they had never witnessed
anything like this in their life. The scene of two women fucking each other
was an incredible turn on for the young girls as they watched the women's tits
slap together as Maria pounded Janet's pussy with the fake cock. Sub-
consciously the two girls rubbed their own pussies as they watched the women
fuck themselves. Janet stiffened and screamed for Maria to hold her tight as
she orgasmed for the first time. Maria held Janet tight but she continued to
thrust into her colleagues gushing pussy. Maria then had her own orgasm
brought on by the nub of the dildo rubbing against her clit. Mai and Soo
stared with the mouths open as they had never witnessed two adults orgasm much
less fuck each other.  
  
Maria told the students that she wanted them to fuck her and Janet with the
fake cocks. Maria and Janet then helped the sisters put on the strap-on dildo
and harness. The two girls giggled as they looked at each other with their new
found toys.  
  
"You have a dicky," Soo said as she blushed and giggled.  
  
"You do too," Mai giggled as she reached over and stroked Soo's rubber cock.  
  
Maria and Janet lay on their backs side by side and Maria urged the young
girls to fuck them. Mai moved between Janet's legs and Soo got between Maria's
legs. The women helped the girls guide the fake cocks into their pussies and
began moving their hips up to meet the sister's inexperienced thrusts. Mai and
Soo learned quickly and they soon had established a rhythm fucking their
coaches. The girls soon felt the nubs on the dildos rubbing against their own
clits and they realized that they too would experience yet another orgasm. It
was so exciting for the young girls to be fucking their coaches that they
leaned over to suck on the women's tits. Maria and Janet in turn fondled the
teenager's tits and tweaked their nipples and rolled them in their fingertips.  
  
The entire room smelled of sex from the four dripping pussies. The four of
them were racing toward another string of orgasms as the sisters fucked their
coaches hard and fast. Mai and Soo were rewarded for their enthusiastic
efforts as the dildo nubs rubbed their clits and kept them in a constant state
of arousal. The two students learned how to work their hips so that they could
receive as much pleasure as they were giving. Maria and Janet were beyond
themselves with lust and they felt their intense orgasms building in their
wombs. Maria and Janet screamed with joy as their orgasms took over their
bodies. They humped quickly and then collapsed back on the bed as the two
students plowed their pussies with the fake cocks.  
  
Mai and Soo removed the rubber dicks from the women's pussies and looked at
the dildos glistening with Maria's and Janet's juices. As if it were the
natural thing in the world Mai and Soo moved into a 69 position and licked the
female nectar off the two fake cocks. Maria and Janet watched them do this and
marveled at the sister's initiative. The two girls sucked the artificial cocks
into their mouths and made a game out of how deep they could take them. After
they licked the dildos dry of Maria and Janet cunt juice the two sisters sat
up and blushed slightly as they realized what they had just done.  
  
"Well you two girls are full of surprises," Maria said and then added, "But I
have another one for you."  
  
Maria retrieved a double headed dildo and handed it to the girls for their
inspection. Mai and Soo curiously handled the imposing dildo. They ran their
hands up and down the big shaft and cupped the fake balls separating the two
cocks. Janet and Maria smiled at the students as they explored the impressive
double dildo.  
  
"Okay let me show you what is next," Maria told them.  
  
Maria and Janet greased up their assholes as the girls watched. Then Maria and
Janet lay on their sides facing one another and they worked the double dildo
into their pussies. The twins watched in awe as the entire shaft at each end
disappeared into the women's pussies.  
  
"Now Soo and Mai we want you to fuck us in the ass with your cocks," Maria
directed.  
  
The two young girls looked mortified. They couldn't believe Maria's request
that she and Janet wanted these big rubber cocks in their ass. The girls
wondered how they could take the dildos in their asses particularly when their
pussies were stuffed with another rubber shaft.  
  
"Come on girls it is okay, we have done this before," Maria said assuredly.  
  
"Really we love it, just give it to us and fuck us hard," Janet added.  
  
Tentatively the two girls got behind Maria and Janet and lay on their sides.
They tenderly tried to push the fake cocks into the women's assholes but they
had a hard time as they were afraid of injuring the women. Maria and Janet
reached behind them and guided the dildos into their assholes and encouraged
the girls to fuck them hard and quick. Mai moved closer to Maria as the cock
slid into the coach's ass and Maria reached behind her and pulled Mai by her
buttocks tightly against her. Mai's pubes pressed into Maria' ass as the fake
dick went all the way up her rectum. Mai could once again felt the nub on the
dildo work its magic on her clit and she began to thrust her hips into Maria
as she fucked her ass. Mai reached around and slid her hand between Janet and
Maria and cupped Maria's tits.  
  
Almost the same scene was repeated between Soo and Janet and the twins were
now fucking their coach's asses with the same enthusiasm as they had fucked
their pussies earlier. The dildo nubs were doing their job as Mai and Soo
rapidly fucked the two shapely asses of Maria and Janet. Mai was the first to
cum and she shuddered and held Maria tightly as she screamed out loud in
ecstasy. Soo was right behind her and she buried her head in Janet shoulder to
muffle her own screams as her body shook with the intensity of her orgasm.
Maria and Janet went right on fucking each other with the double dildo until
they too had mind shattering orgasms. The two women held onto the cute shapely
bottoms of the teenagers as they thrashed their hips together, shuddered,
stiffened and coated the dildo with their female juices.  
  
"Oh my God that was fantastic," cried Janet.  
  
"Oh you girls are so incredibly sexy," Maria gasped.  
  
The four of them lay still in the bed for awhile still coupled together with
the fake cocks. Maria told the teenagers to move first and slowly pull out of
her and Janet's ass. Mai and Soo eased the strap-on cocks out of the women's
asses and looked at them in disbelief. It was still hard to imagine those big
rubber cocks stuffed up Maria's and Janet's asses. Maria and Janet then moved
apart and removed the double dildo from their pussies. Maria gathered up the
fake cocks and put them in the sink to be washed thoroughly. As Maria washed
the dildo's Janet lay on her back between the two teenagers. Soo and Mai
played with Janet tits as Janet diddled each girl's tight little pussy.  
  
Mai the spoke and shocked everyone, "I want you to take my virginity, Janet."  
  
Janet could hardly believe her ears, "Did I hear you correctly that you want
me to take you virginity?"  
  
"Yes, I want you to strap on that cock and fuck me," Mai replied.  
  
"And I want you Maria to fuck me and take my virginity," offered Soo.  
  
"My God do you know what you girls are asking?" asked a stunned Maria.  
  
"Yes, you have taught us so much that we want you to take us to the next
level," Mai responded and then, "Do you agree Soo?"  
  
"Oh yes my pussy is dripping in anticipation," Soo gasped.  
  
"Very well then," Maria said and looked at Janet who was still numb from the
request.  
  
Soo and Mai lay on their backs side by side on Maria's bed as Maria and Janet
put on the dildo harnesses. Then they snapped the fake cocks into place and
climbed on the bed between the two Chinese virgins. Maria and Janet ran the
mushroom heads of the fake cocks along the girl's tiny slits and their hooded
clits. They then began to ease the cock tips between the slick lips of the
girl's pussies until they felt the resistance of their hymens. Janet and Maria
looked at each other and on a nod from each other they entered the girls
quickly. Soo and Mai each gave a startled cry and a brief shriek of pain as
the women entered the twin's vaginas.  
  
Soo and Mai felt the fake cocks forced past their maidenhoods losing their
virginity simultaneously. Maria and Janet reveled in their fortune taking the
girl's virginity in full view of each other. Soo and Mai tensed and cried out
for the first several minutes and then they began to enjoy it and push back
against the women fucking them. The two sisters humped up against the mature
women until the full nine inches of each dildo were going deep inside them
with each thrust. Soo and Mai wrapped their legs around their coach's torsos
and locked their ankles together behind the women's back just above their
buttocks. Mai and Soo used their powerful legs for leverage and pulled
themselves onto the fake cocks buried deep in their pussies.  
  
Maria and Janet realized that the two sisters were going to cum again as they
frantically rubbed their clits up and down the rubber shafts of the strap-on
cocks. Maria and Janet felt the nubs of the dildo scrape against their own
clits and they too knew that they were close to another mind blowing orgasm.
The bedroom was filled with screams, moans and groans of ecstasy as the two
girls and two women climaxed with intense orgasms. The teenagers held the
women tightly as they rode the fake cocks until their young bodies shuddered
and then went limp as they were drained of all energy. The rubber cocks were
coated with female juices from both ends as Maria and Janet gently lowered
their bodies to the young students.  
  
"Oh thank you, thank you!" cried Soo as she held tightly to Maria.  
  
"It was wonderful better than I had ever hoped for," Mai said as she stroked
Janet's hair and kissed her face.  
  
It was several minutes before the foursome disengaged and regained their
composure. Maria told the girls that it was getting late and that they should
get back to the dorm. Soo and Mai used Maria's bathroom to shower and then
they got dressed. Maria presented the two girls with a strap-on dildo and a
two-headed dildo to take with them.  
  
"This is for you two so that you can fun with each other," Maria said as she
handed them the sex toys.  
  
Soo and Mai were thrilled to have the dildos and they already looked forward
to using them on each other. The two girls hugged and kissed a naked Maria and
Janet goodbye and then headed to their dorm room. Soo and Mai had agreed to
lose their virginity together and now they were eternally grateful that it was
Maria and Janet who took their maidenhood.  
  
"God, can you believe what just happened?" Janet gasped after the girls left
Maria's condo and then added, "All my life I had hoped to deflower a woman but
never did I ever expect to be able to take a beautiful 20 year old student's
virginity."  
  
"I know it is incredible when you think about it," Maria added, "Those two
innocent tasty little morsels offering up their cherries to us and I can't
believe how they handled those 9 inch dildos."  
  
"I feel as if I can die now after that experience. It just doesn't get any
better than that," Janet continued.  
  
"The best part is that is was so unexpected and that they took the lead. They
actually asked us to take their cherry," Maria said as if she was still in
disbelief.  
  
"I am still turned on by what just happened and my pussy is flowing," Janet
said as she fingered her twat.  
  
"I am too. Come on let's go back to bed for awhile," Maria directed as she
felt her own pussy heat up with excitement.  
  
Maria and Janet went back into the bedroom and made passionate love late into
the night before they finally fell asleep. The two women used the fake cocks
on each other and at times closed their eyes and imagined that they were
fucking the two teenagers. It would be an experience that they would never
forget.  
  
_NEXT CHAPTER  
  
Maria and Janet learn more about the other players and one of the mothers
visits the campus. _




End file.

